"A Daily Rate."

By Grace Livingston Hill

The Project Gutenberg eBook of "A Daily Rate."
    
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.

Title: "A Daily Rate."

Author: Grace Livingston Hill

Illustrator: A. D. Dahn


        
Release date: July 1, 2026 [eBook #78992]

Language: English

Original publication: Philadelphia: The Union Press, 1900

Other information and formats: www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/78992

Credits: This eBook was produced by: Mardi Desjardins, John Routh & the online Distributed Proofreaders Canada team at https://www.pgdpcanada.net This file was produced from images generously made available by Internet Archive.


*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK "A DAILY RATE." ***


                          [Cover Illustration]

                            “A DAILY RATE.”

                                   BY
                         GRACE LIVINGSTON HILL

                               AUTHOR OF
            “A Chautauqua Idyl,” “In the Way,” “Lone Point,”
                     “Katharine’s Yesterday,” etc.



                            The UNION PRESS
                             Philadelphia.
                         •1122 CHESTNUT STREET•




        [Copyright, 1900, by The American Sunday-School Union.]

                              A Daily Rate




                               CHAPTER I.


The world would not have looked quite so dreary to her perhaps, if it
had not been her birthday. Somehow one persists in expecting something
unusual to happen on a birthday, no matter how many times one has had
nothing but disappointment.

Not that Celia Murray was really expecting anything, even a letter, on
this birthday, though she did stand shivering in the half light of the
dim, forlorn front room that served as a parlor for Mrs. Morris’
boarding-house, watching for the postman to reach their door. She did it
merely because she wished to be near, to get the letter at
once,—provided there was a letter,—and not that she really hoped for
one.

It was Saturday evening, and the close of a half holiday in the store in
which she usually stood all day long as saleswoman. The unusual half day
off was on account of some parade in the city. Celia had not spent her
afternoon at the parade. Instead, she had been in her small, cold, back
bedroom in the third story, attending to various worn garments which
needed mending. They had been spread out on the bed in a row, and she
had gone steadily down the line putting a few stitches here, a button
there, and setting in a patch in another, counting every minute of
daylight hoping to finish her work before it faded, for the gas in her
room was dim, the burner being old and worn out. She tried to be gay
over the work. She called it her “dress parade.” She knew it was the
best way in which to accomplish as much as she wished to do.

And now it was six o’clock, and she had turned down the wretched,
flickering light in her room and descended to the parlor to watch for
the postman.

He was late to-night, probably on account of the parade. She leaned her
forehead against the cold glass and looked out into the misty darkness.
Everything was murky and smoky. The passers-by seemed tired and in a
hurry. Some had their collars turned up. She wondered where they were
all going, and whether there were pleasant homes awaiting them. She let
her imagination picture the homes of some. There was a young working man
hurrying along with breezy step and swinging dinner pail. He had not
been to the parade. His parade was at home awaiting his coming,—a
laughing baby, a tidy wife, and the house redolent of fried onions and
sausage. She had passed houses often at night where these odors were
streaming forth from quickly opened and closed doors. The young man
would like it; it would be pleasant to him. And the thought brought no
less cheer to the watching girl because to her this supper would not be
in the least appetizing.

There passed by a strong old German, a day laborer perhaps. She pictured
the table full of noisy children of various ages, and the abundance of
sauerkraut and cheese and coffee and other viands set out. Then came a
stream of girls, some clerks like herself, and some mill girls. On other
evenings they would present a different appearance, but many of them
to-night were in holiday attire on account of the half holiday which had
been generally given throughout the city. These girls, some of them, had
homes of more or less attractiveness, and others, like herself, were
domiciled in boarding-houses. She sat down on one of the hard haircloth
chairs and looked around that parlor. In the dimness of the turned down
gas, it appeared more forlorn than usual. The ingrain carpet had long
ago lost any claims to respectability. It had a dragged out, sodden
appearance, and in places there were unmistakable holes. These, it is
true, had been twisted and turned about so as to come mostly under the
tables and sofa, but they were generally visible to the casual observer.
The parlor suite of haircloth, by reason of being much sat upon, had
lost the spring of youth, and several of the chairs and one end of the
sofa looked like fallen cake. There was an asthmatic cabinet organ at
the end of the room which had been left by some departing boarder,
(under compulsion) in lieu of his board. There were a few worn pieces of
music scattered upon it. Celia knew that the piece now open on the top
was that choice selection “The Cat came back,” which was a great
favorite with a young railroad brakeman who had a metallic tenor voice
and good lungs. He was one of the boarders and considered quite a singer
in the house. There was a feeble attempt at the æsthetic in the form of
a red, bedraggled chenille portière at the doorway, bordered with large
pink cabbage roses. The mantel had a worn plush scarf embroidered in a
style quite out of date and ugly in the extreme. On it stood a large
glass case of wax flowers, several cheap vases, and a match safe. Over
it hung a crayon portrait of the landlady’s departed husband, and
another of herself adorned the opposite wall, both done in staring
crayon work from tin types of ancient date, heavily and cheaply framed.
These with a marriage certificate of the clasped-hand-and-orange-wreath
order, framed in gilt, made up the adornments of the room.

Celia sighed as she looked about and took it all in once more. It was a
dreary place. She had been in it but a week. Would she ever get used to
it? She did not curl her lip in scorn as many other girls would have
done over that room and its furnishings. Neither did she feel that utter
distaste that is akin to hatred. Instead was a kind of pity in her heart
for it all, and for the poor lonely creatures who had no other place to
call home. Where there is such pity, there is sometimes love not far
away. She even rose, went to the doorway and looped the loose,
discouraged folds of the chenille curtain in more graceful fashion.
Somehow her fingers could not help doing so much toward making that room
different.

Then she sighed and went to the window again. She could see the belated
postman now across the street. She watched him as he flitted back and
forth, ringing this bell and that, and searching in the great leather
bag for papers or packages. His breath showed white against the dark
greyish-blue of the misty evening air. His grey uniform seemed to be a
part of the mist. The yellow glare of the street-lamp touched the gilt
buttons and made a bright spot of the letters on his cap as he paused a
moment to study an address before coming to their door.

Celia opened the door before he had time to ring and took the letters
from his hand. There were not many. The boarders in that house had not
many correspondents. She stepped into the parlor once more, and turned
up the gas now for a moment to see if there were any for herself.
Strange to say, there were two, rather thin and unpromising it is true,
but they gave a little touch of the unusual to the dull day. She noticed
that one bore a familiar postmark and was in her aunt’s handwriting. The
other held the city mark and seemed to be from some firm of lawyers. She
did not feel much curiosity concerning it. It was probably some
circular. It did not look in the least interesting. She pushed them both
quickly into her pocket as the front door opened letting in several
noisy boarders. She did not wish to read her letters in public. They
would keep till after supper. The bell was already ringing. It would not
be worth while to go upstairs before she went to the dining-room.
Experience taught her that the supper was at its very worst the minute
after the bell rang. If one waited one must take the consequences, and
“the consequences” were not desirable. The meals in that house were not
too tempting at any time. Not that she cared much for her supper, she
was too weary, but one must eat to live, and so she went to the
dining-room.

Out there the gas was turned to its highest. The coarse tablecloth was
none of the cleanest. In fact, it reminded one of former breakfasts and
dinners. The thick white dishes bore marks of hard usage. They were
nicked and cracked. There were plates of heavy, sour-looking bread at
either end of the table. The butter looked mussy and uninviting. The
inevitable, scanty supply of prunes stood before the plate of the young
German clerk, who was already in his chair helping himself to a liberal
dish. The German clerk was fond of prunes, and always got to the table
before any one else. Some of the others good-naturedly called him
selfish, and frequently passed meaning remarks veiled in thin jokes
concerning this habit of his; but if he understood he kept the matter to
himself, and was apparently not thin-skinned.

There was a stew for dinner that night. Celia dreaded stews since the
night of her arrival when she had found a long curly hair on her plate
in the gravy. There were such possibilities of utility in a stew. It was
brought on in little thick white dishes, doled out in exact portions.
There were great green fat pickles, suggesting copper in their pickling,
and there was a plate of cheese and another of crackers. A girl brought
each one a small spoonful of canned corn, but it was cold and scarcely
cooked at all, and the kernels were large and whole. Celia having tasted
it, pushed her dish back and did not touch it again. On the side table
was a row of plates each containing a slim, thin piece of pale-crusted
pie, its interior being dark and of an undefined character. Celia tried
to eat. The dishes were not all clean. Her spoon had a sticky handle and
so had her fork. The silver was all worn off the blade of her knife, and
she could not help thinking that perhaps it was done by being constantly
used to convey food to the mouth of the brakeman with the tenor voice.

One by one the boarders drifted in. It was surprising how quickly they
gathered after that bell rang. They knew what they had to depend upon in
the way of bread and butter, and it was first come first served. Little
Miss Burns sat across the table from Celia. She was thin and nervous and
laughed a good deal in an excited way, as if everything were unusually
funny, and she were in a constant state of embarrassing apology. There
were tired little lines around her eyes, and her mouth still wore a baby
droop, though she was well along in years. Celia noticed that she drank
only a cup of tea and nibbled a cracker. She did not look well. It was
plain the dinner was no more appetizing to her than to the young girl
who had so recently come there to board. She ought to have some delicate
thin slices of nicely browned toast and a cup of good tea with real
cream in it, and a fresh egg poached just right, or a tiny cup of good
strong beef bullion, Celia said to herself. She amused herself by
thinking how she would like to slip out in the kitchen and get them for
her, only—and she almost smiled at the thought—she would hardly find
the necessary articles with which to make all that out in the Morris
kitchen.

Next to Miss Burns sat two young girls, clerks in a three-cent store.
They carried a good deal of would-be style, and wore many bright rings
on their grimy fingers, whose nails were never cleaned nor cut
apparently—except by their teeth. These girls were rather pretty in a
coarse way, and laughed and talked a good deal in loud tones with the
tenor brakeman, whose name was Bob Yates, and with the other young men
boarders. These young men were respectively a clerk in a department
store, a student in the University, and a young teacher in the public
schools. Celia noticed that neither the student nor the school-teacher
ate heartily, and that the young dry goods salesman had a hollow cough.
How nice it would be if they all could have a good dinner just for once,
soup and roast beef, and good bread and vegetables, with a delicious
old-fashioned apple dumpling smoking hot, such as her aunt Hannah could
make. How she would enjoy giving it to them all. How she would like to
eat some of it herself! She sighed as she pushed back her plate with a
good half of the stew yet untouched, and felt that it was impossible to
eat another mouthful of that. Then she felt ashamed to think she cared
so much for mere eating, and tried to talk pleasantly to the little old
lady beside her, who occupied a small dismal room on the third floor and
seemed to stay in it most of the time. Celia had not yet found out her
occupation nor her standing in society, but she noticed that she
trembled when she tried to cut her meat, and she was shabbily clothed in
rusty black that looked as if it had served its time out several times
over.

Mrs. Morris came into the dining-room when the pie was being served. She
was large and worried-looking, and wore a soiled calico wrapper without
a collar. Her hair had not been combed since morning and some locks had
escaped in her neck and on her forehead and added to her generally
dejected appearance. She sat down heavily and wearily at the head of the
table, and added her spiritless voice to the conversation. She asked
them all how they enjoyed the parade and declared it would have been
enough parade for her if she could have “set down for a couple of
hours.” Then she sighed and drank a cup of tea from her saucer, holding
the saucer on the palm of her hand.

It all looked hopelessly dreary to Celia. And here she expected to spend
the home part of her life for several years at least, or if not here,
yet in some place equally destitute of anything which constitutes a
home.

Except for her brief conversation with the old lady on her right and a
few words to Miss Burns, she had spoken to no one during the meal, and
as soon as she had excused herself from the pie and folded her napkin,
she slipped upstairs to her room, for the thought of the two letters in
her pocket seemed more inviting than the pie. She turned the gas to its
highest though it did screech, that she might see to read her letters,
and then she drew them forth. Her aunt Hannah’s came first. She tore the
envelope. Only one sheet and not much written thereon. Aunt Hannah was
well, but very busy, for Nettie’s children were all down with whooping
cough and the baby had been quite sick, poor little thing, and she had
no time to write. Hiram, Nettie’s husband, too, had been ill and laid up
for a week, so aunt Hannah had been nursing night and day. She enclosed
a little bookmark to remember Celia’s birthday. She wished she could
send her something nice, but times were hard and Celia knew she had no
money, so she must take it out in love.

Hiram’s sickness and the doctor’s bills made things close for Nettie or
she would have remembered the birthday, too, perhaps. Aunt Hannah felt
that it was hard to have to be a burden on Nettie, now when the children
were young and she and Hiram needed every cent he could earn, but what
else could she do? She sent her love to her dear girl, however, and
wanted her to read the verse on the little ribbon enclosed and perhaps
it would do her good. She hoped Celia had a nice comfortable “homey”
place to board and would write soon.

That was all. The white ribbon bookmark was of satin and bore these
words:

“His allowance was a continual allowance . . . a daily rate. 2 Kings
xxv. 30,” and beneath in smaller letters:

           “Charge not thyself with the weight of a year,
           Child of the Master, faithful and dear,
           Choose not the cross for the coming week,
           For that is more than he bids thee seek.
           Bend not thine arms for to-morrow’s load,
           Thou mayest leave that to thy gracious God,
           Daily, only he says to thee,
           ‘Take up thy cross and follow me.’”




                              CHAPTER II.


Celia read the words over mechanically. She was not thinking so much of
what they said, as she was of what her aunt had written, or rather of
what she had not written, and what could be read between the lines, by
means of her knowledge of that aunt and her surroundings. In other words
Celia Murray was doing exactly what the words on the white ribbon told
her not to do. She was charging herself “with the weight of a year.” She
had picked up the cross of the coming months and was bending under it
already.

Her trouble was aunt Hannah. Oh, if she could but do something for her.
She knew very well that that little sentence about being a burden on
Nettie meant more than aunt Hannah would have her know. She knew that
aunt Hannah would never feel herself a burden on her niece Nettie,—for
whom she had slaved half her life, and was still slaving, unless
something had been said or done to make her feel so; and Celia, who
never had liked her cousin-in-law, Hiram, at any time, for more reasons
than mere prejudice, knew pretty well who it was that had made good,
faithful, untiring aunt Hannah feel that she was a burden.

Celia’s eyes flashed, and she caught her hands in each other in a quick
convulsive grasp. “Oh, if I could but do something to get aunt Hannah
out of that and have her with me!” she exclaimed aloud. “But here am I
with six dollars and a half a week; paying out four and a quarter for
this miserable hole they call a home; my clothes wearing out just as
fast as they can, and a possibility hanging over me that I may not suit
and may be discharged at any time. How can I ever get ahead enough to do
anything!”

She sat there thinking over her life and aunt Hannah’s. Her own mother
and Nettie’s mother had died within a year of each other. They were both
aunt Hannah’s sisters. Mr. Murray did not long survive his wife, and
Celia had gone to live with her cousins who were being mothered by aunt
Hannah, then a young, strong, sweet woman. Her uncle, Mr. Harmon, had
been a hard working, silent man, who had supplied the wants of his
family as well as he could, but that had not always been luxuriously,
for he had never been a successful man. The children had grown fast and
required many things. There were five of his own and Celia, who had
shared with the rest,—though never really getting her share, because of
her readiness to give up and the others’ readiness to take what she gave
up. Somehow the Harmon children had a streak of selfishness in them, and
they always seemed willing that aunt Hannah and Celia should take a back
seat whenever any one had to do so, which was nearly all the time. Celia
never resented this for herself, even in her heart; but for aunt Hannah
she often and often did so. That faithful woman spent the best years of
her life, doing for her sister’s children as if they had been her own,
and yet without the honor of being their mother, and feeling that the
home was her own. She had never married, she was simply aunt Hannah, an
excellent housekeeper, and the best substitute for a mother one could
imagine. As the children grew up they brought all their burdens to aunt
Hannah to bear, and when there were more than she could conveniently
carry, they would broadly hint that it was Celia’s place to help her,
for Celia was the outsider, the dependent, the moneyless one. It had
fallen to her lot to tend the babies till they grew from being tended
into boys, and then to follow after and pick up the things they left in
disorder in their wake. It was she who altered the girls’ dresses to
suit the style, and fashioned dainty hats from odds and ends, turning
and pressing them over to make them as good as new for some special
occasion. And then when it came her turn, it was she who had to stay at
home, because she had nothing to wear, and no time to make it over, and
nothing left to make over, because she had given it all to the others.

Then had come the day,—not so many weeks ago: Celia remembered it as
vividly as though it had happened but yesterday; she had gone over the
details so many times they were burned upon her brain. And yet, how long
the time really had been and how many changes had come! The boy came up
from the office with a scared face to say that something had happened to
Mr. Harmon, and then they had brought him home and the family all too
soon learned that there was no use in trying to resuscitate him,—all
hope had been over before he was taken from the office. Heart failure,
they said! And instantly following upon this had come that other phrase,
“financial failure,” and soon the orphans found they were penniless.
This was not so bad for the orphans, for they were fully grown and the
girls were both married. The three boys all had good positions and could
support themselves. But what of aunt Hannah and Celia? Nettie and Hiram
had taken aunt Hannah into their family, ill-disguising the fact that
she was asked because of the help she could give in bringing up and
caring for the children, but Celia had understood from the first that
there was no place for her.

She had been given a good education with the others, that is, a common
school course followed by a couple of years in the High School. She had
her two hands and her bright wits and nothing else. A neighbor had
offered to use her influence with a friend of a friend of a partner in a
city store, and the result was her position. She had learned since she
came that it was a good one as such things went. She had regular hours
for meals and occasional holidays, and her work was not heavy. She felt
that she ought to be thankful. She had accepted it, of course, there was
nothing else to be done, but she had looked at aunt Hannah with a heavy
heart and she knew aunt Hannah felt it as keenly. They had been very
close to each other, these two, who had been separated from the others,
in a sense, and had burdens to bear. Perhaps their sense of loneliness
in the world had made them cling the more to each other. Celia would
have liked to be able to say “Aunt Hannah, come with me. I can take care
of you now. You have cared for me all my life, now I will give you a
home and rest.” Ah! if that could have been! Celia drew her breath
quickly, and the tears came between the closed lids. She knew if she
once allowed the tears full sway, they would not stay till they had
swept all before them, and left her in no fit state to appear before
those dreadful, inquisitive boarders, or perhaps even to sell ribbons in
Dobson and Co.’s on Monday. No, she must not give way. She would read
that other letter and take her mind from these things, for certain it
was that she could do nothing more now than she had done, except to
write aunt Hannah a cheering letter, which she could not do unless she
grew cheerful herself.

So she opened the other letter.

It was from Rawley and Brown, a firm of lawyers on Fifth street,
desiring to know if she was Celia Murray, daughter of Henry Dean Murray
of so forth and so on, and if she was, would she please either write or
call upon them at her earliest possible convenience, producing such
evidences of her identity as she possessed.

The girl laughed as she read it over again. “The idea!” she said,
talking aloud to herself again as she had grown into the habit of doing
since she was alone, just to feel as if she were talking to some one.
“If they want to identify me, let them do so. I’m not asking anything of
them. If I’m I, prove it! How very funny! What for, I wonder? There
can’t be a fortune, I know, for father didn’t have a cent. I’m sure I’ve
had that dinged into my ears times enough by Nettie, and even Uncle
Joseph took pains to tell me that occasionally. Well, it is mysterious.”

She got up and began to walk about the room singing to herself the old
nursery rhyme:

            “‘If it be me, as I suppose it be,
            I’ve a little dog at home and he’ll know me;
            If it be _I_, he’ll wag his little tail,
            And if it be _not_ I, he’ll bark, and he’ll wail.’

“Dear me!” said Celia, “I’m worse off than the poor old woman who fell
asleep on the king’s highway. I haven’t even a little dog at home who’ll
know me.” She sighed and sat down, picking up the white ribbon that had
fallen to the floor. Then she read it over again carefully.

“How like aunt Hannah that sounds!” she said to herself, as she read the
poem slowly over, “‘Child of the Master, faithful and dear.’ I can hear
aunt Hannah saying that to me. She was always one to hunt out beautiful
things and say them to me as if they had been written all for my poor
self. If aunt Hannah had ever had time, I believe she would have been a
poet. She has it in her. How entirely I have been doing just exactly
what this poem says I must not do: choosing my cross for the coming
week. Yes, and bending my arm for to-morrow’s load. I have been thinking
what a dreary Sunday I should have, and wondering how I could endure it
all day long in this ugly, cold room. And I won’t stay down in that mean
parlor and listen to their horrible singing. It wouldn’t be right
anyway, for they have not the slightest idea of Sabbath keeping. Last
Sunday was one hurrah all day long. I wonder what that verse at the top
is—‘His allowance was a continual allowance.’ I declare I don’t
remember to have ever read it before. But trust aunt Hannah to ferret
out the unusual verses. I must look it up. Second Kings: who was it
about, anyway? The twenty-fifth chapter. Oh! here it is!” She read:

    “‘And it came to pass in the seven and thirtieth year of the
    captivity of Jehoiachin king of Judah, in the twelfth month, on
    the seven and twentieth day of the month, that Evil-me-rodach
    king of Babylon in the year that he began to reign did lift up
    the head of Jehoiachin king of Judah out of prison;

    And he spake kindly to him, and set his throne above the throne
    of the kings that were with him in Babylon;

    And changed his prison garments: and he did eat bread
    continually before him all the days of his life.

    And his allowance was a continual allowance given him of the
    king, a daily rate for every day, all the days of his life.’”

Celia paused and read the verses over again.

She began to see why her aunt had sent it to her, and more than that why
her heavenly Father had sent it to her. It was the same thought that was
in the bit of a poem. God was taking care of her. He was a king and he
was able to lift her head up out of prison, if this was a prison, and
set her even on a throne, and change her prison garments, and more than
that give her an allowance of grace to meet all the daily needs of her
life. A continual allowance: she need never worry lest it should give
out. It was “all the days of her life.” And aunt Hannah was his also. He
would care for her in the same way. There was nothing to be done but to
trust and do what he gave her to do. Perhaps it was unusually hard for
her to do that. She had always been so accustomed to looking ahead and
bearing burdens for others and planning for them. She recognized her
fault and resolved to think more about it. Meantime, obviously the next
duty for her to perform, and one by no means a cross, was for her to
write a long cheery letter to aunt Hannah, who she could easily see was
homesick for her already, though it was but a week since they had been
separated. She gathered together her writing materials, drew her chair a
little nearer the poor light, put on her heavy outdoor coat, for the
room was chilly, though it was only the latter part of October, and
began to write; thinking meanwhile that she could perhaps make a
pleasant Sabbath afternoon for herself out of the study of Jehoiachin,
who was so much a stranger to her that she had hardly remembered there
was such a person spoken of in the Bible.

The letter she wrote was long and cheerful. It abounded in pen pictures
of the places and things she had seen, and it contained descriptions in
detail of the different boarders. She tried not to tell the disagreeable
things, for she knew aunt Hannah would be quick to understand how hard
it all was for her to bear, and she would not lay a feather’s burden
upon those dear hard-worked shoulders. So she detailed merry
conversations, and made light of the poor fare, saying she had a very
good and a very cheap place they all told her and she guessed they were
right.

She also drew upon her imagination and described the dear little home
she was going to make for aunt Hannah to come and rest in and spend her
later years, and she told her she was going to begin right away to save
up for it. She made it all so real that the tears came to her eyes for
very longing for it, and one dropped down on the paper and blotted a
word. She hastily wiped it out, and then took a fresh page, for aunt
Hannah’s eyes were keen. She would be quick to know what made that blot.
She paused a minute with her pen in air ere she closed the letter.
Should she, or should she not tell aunt Hannah of that letter from the
lawyers? No, she would not until she saw whether it came to anything,
and if so, what. It might only worry her aunt. There were worries enough
at Hiram’s without her putting any more in the way. So she finished her
letter, sealed and addressed it, and then ran down to put it in the box.

As she returned from her errand into the misty outdoor world, and closed
the door behind her shivering, glad she did not have to go out any more,
she met the tall, lanky cook in untidy work dress and unkempt hair.
Celia noticed instantly that it was curly hair and black, like the one
she found in the stew the night she came. She was passing on upstairs
but the cook put out her hand and stopped her.

“Say,” she said in familiar tones, “I wish you’d jes’ step into Mis’
Morris’ room and stay a spell. She’s ben took dreadful sick this
evenin’, and I’ve ben with her off an’ on most all the time, an’ I’ve
got pies yet to bake fer to-morrow, an’ I can’t spend no more time up
there now. She ought to have some one, an’ the rest seems all to be gone
out ’cept that ol’ lady up there, an’ she’s gone to bed by this time, I
reckon.”

Celia could do nothing but consent to go, of course, though the task
looked anything but a pleasant one. Mrs. Morris had never struck her
pleasantly. She enquired as to the sickness. The woman didn’t exactly
know what was the matter. No, there had not been any physician sent for.
“There wan’t no one to go in the first place, and, secondly, doctors is
expensive things, take ’em anyway you will, medicine and all. Mrs.
Morris can’t afford no doctors. She’s most killed with debt now.”

Celia turned on the stairs, and followed the woman’s direction to find
Mrs. Morris’ room. Over in her mind came those words she had read a
little while ago.

                   “Daily, only, he says to thee,
                   ‘Take up thy cross and follow me.’”

She smiled, and thought how soon the cross had come to her after she had
laid down the wrong one of a week ahead, and tapped softly on Mrs.
Morris’ door, lifting up her heart in a prayer that she might be shown
how to do or say the right thing if action were required of her. Then
she heard a strained voice, as of one in pain, call “Come in,” and she
opened the door.




                              CHAPTER III.


Mrs. Morris lay on her unmade bed, still in the soiled wrapper. Her
expansive face was drawn in agony and she looked white and sick. She
seemed surprised to see Celia, and supposed she had come to prefer a
request for another towel, perhaps, or to make some complaint.

“You’ll have to ask Maggie,” she said without waiting to hear what the
girl had to say. “I can’t talk now, I’m suffering so. It’s just
terrible. I never was so sick in me life.”

“But I’ve come to see if I can’t help you,” explained Celia. “Maggie
told me you were sick. Tell me what is the matter. Perhaps I can do
something for you. I know about sickness and nursing.”

“Oh, such awful pain!” said the woman, writhing in agony, “I suppose
it’s something I’ve et. Though I never et a thing, all day long, but a
little piece of pie at dinner to-night and me tea. Me nerves is all used
up with worrying anyway, and me stomach won’t stand anything any more.”

Celia asked a few practical questions, and then told her she would
return in a minute. She found her way in haste to the kitchen, though
she had never before penetrated to that realm of darkness—and dirt. She
ordered Maggie peremptorily to bring her a large quantity of very hot
water as soon as she could, and send somebody for a doctor. Then she
went up to her own room and hastily gathered a bottle or two from her
small store of medicines and a piece of an old blanket she had brought
from home. She hesitated a moment. She ought to have another flannel.
The woman was too sick to find anything, and she had said she did not
know where there were any old flannels. It was necessary. She must take
up this cross to save that poor woman from her suffering and perhaps
save her life, for she was evidently very sick indeed. She waited no
longer, but quickly took out her own clean flannel petticoat. It was
nothing very fine, and was somewhat old, but it was a sacrifice to think
of using any of her personal clothing down there in that dirty room, and
for that woman who did not seem to be scrupulously clean herself.
However, there was no help for it, and she hurried back as fast as she
could. She gave the poor woman a little medicine which she thought might
help her, and she knew could do no harm till the doctor could get there,
and then plunging the cherished blanket into the hot water, she wrung it
as dry as she could and quickly applied it to the seat of pain, covering
it with the flannel skirt. She knew there was nothing like hot
applications to relieve severe pain. She saw by the look of relief that
passed over the sick woman’s face that the pain had relaxed to some
extent. After a moment, Mrs. Morris said:

“I don’t know as you’d a needed to send for a doctor, this might have
helped me without him. I can’t bear to think of his bill. Bills’ll be
the death of me yet, I’m afraid.”

But a spasm of pain stopped her speech, and Celia hastened to repeat the
applications.

It was some time before the doctor arrived. The girl had to work fast
and hard. It was evident when he came that he thought the patient a very
sick woman. Mrs. Morris realized this, too. After the doctor was gone
and Celia was left alone with her, she asked her if she supposed the
doctor thought she was going to die.

“Though I ain’t got much to live for, the land knows—nor to die for
either for the matter of that.”

“Oh you forget!” said Celia, reverently, aghast that one should speak in
that tone of dying, “There is Jesus! Don’t you know him?”

The woman looked at her as if she had spoken the name of some heathen
deity, and then turned her head wearily.

“No,” she said, “I don’t suppose I am a Christian. I never had any time.
When I was a girl there was always plenty of fun, and I never thought
about it, and after I got married there wasn’t time. I did tell the
minister I would think about joining church the time of my daughter’s
funeral, but I never did. I kind of wish I had now. One never is ready
to die, I s’pose. But then living isn’t easy either, the land knows.”

A grey ashen look overspread her face. Celia wondered if perhaps she
might not be dying even now. She shuddered. It seemed so terrible for
any one to die in that way. She had never been with a very sick person
near to death, and she did not know the signs well enough to judge how
much danger there might be of it. She felt however that she must say
something. The woman must have some thread of hope, if she should be
really dying. She came close to her and took her hand tenderly.

“Dear Mrs. Morris! Don’t talk that way. Dying isn’t hard, I’m sure, if
you have Jesus, and he’s always near and ready, if you will only take
him now. I know he helps one to die, for I can remember my own dear
mother, though I was but a little girl. She had a beautiful look on her
face, when she bade me good-bye, and told me she was going to be with
Jesus, and that I must always be a good girl and get ready to come to
her. She looked very happy about it.”

Mrs. Morris opened her eyes and gave her a searching look. Then she said
in a voice half-way between a groan and a frightened shout:

“Why do you talk like that? You don’t think I am dying, do you? Tell me,
quick! Did the doctor say I was going to die? Why did he go away if that
was so? Send for him quick!”

Then the inexperienced young girl realized that she had made a mistake
and been too much in earnest. There was danger that the woman might make
herself much worse by such excitement. She must calm her. To talk to her
thus would do no good. She must wait until a suitable season.

“No, Mrs. Morris,” she said, rising and speaking calmly, “he did not say
so, and I do not believe you are going to die. You must not get so
excited, or you will make yourself worse. Here, take your medicine now,
for it is time. I did not mean you to think I thought you were dying,
and I’m sorry I spoke about my mother’s death, it was very foolish of
me. Please forget it now. I only wanted to tell you how Jesus was
standing near ready to be a comfort to you always, whether you lived or
died. But now you ought to go to sleep. Would you like me to sing to
you? Is the pain a little easier? The doctor said you must lie very
quiet. Can I get you anything?”

By degrees she calmed the woman again, and then sat down to watch and
give her the medicine. There seemed to be no one whose business it was
to relieve Celia. Maggie put her head in the door about midnight to say
she was going to bed now and had left a fire, if any more hot water was
needed. Celia sat there gradually taking in the fact that she was left
to sit up all night with this sick woman, an utter stranger to her. It
was scarcely what she would choose as a pleasant task. But she
recognized it as the cross the Master had laid upon her with his own
hand, and there was a sense of sweetness in performing this duty which
she would not have had otherwise. It occurred to her that it was well
this was Saturday night instead of some other, for she could ill afford
to sit up and lose all her sleep when she had to stand at the counter
all the next day. She smiled to herself in the dim light and thought
this must be part of the Master’s plan, to fix it so that she could do
this duty and her others also. This was all he asked her to do, just
what she had strength for. He gave her the daily allowance of that. But
what if she should have to sit up to-morrow night? “Daily, only, he says
to thee,” and “Thou mayest leave that to thy gracious Lord,” came the
answering words, for now she knew the little poem by heart. She went
upstairs, hastily changed her dress for a loose wrapper, and secured her
Bible and one or two articles which she thought might be useful in
caring for the sick woman. When she came down again Mrs. Morris seemed
to be asleep, and Celia settled herself by the dim light with her Bible.
She felt that she needed some help and strength. She had not read long
when Mrs. Morris said in a low voice, “Is that the Bible you’ve got?
Read a little piece to me.”

Celia hardly knew where to turn for the right words just now, but her
Bible opened easily of itself to the twenty-third psalm and she read the
words in a low, musical voice, praying the while that they might be sent
of the Spirit to reach the sick woman’s heart. When she stopped reading
Mrs. Morris seemed to be asleep again, and Celia settled herself in the
least uncomfortable chair in the room, and began to think.

But she had not long for this occupation, for this was to be a night of
action. The terrible pain which for a time had been held by some
powerful opiate the doctor had given when he first came in, returned in
full force, and the patient soon was writhing in mortal agony once more.
Celia was roused from her thoughts. She called Maggie and sent for hot
water and the doctor again, and it was not until morning was beginning
to stain the sky with crimson that she sat down to breathe and realize
that Mrs. Morris was still alive. It seemed almost a miracle that she
was, for the doctor had said when he arrived that there was doubt
whether he could save her.

Early in the morning Miss Burns came in to relieve her watch, and Celia
snatched a little sleep, but she found on awaking that she was needed
again. Mrs. Morris had asked for her. She went down to the breakfast
table and found, what she had not supposed possible, that the breakfast
was so much worse than former breakfasts, since the mistress was sick,
that it was hardly possible to eat at all. It seemed that Mrs. Morris
had made some difference in things, though Celia had thought the night
before that they could not very well be much worse. She had yet to find
that there were many grades below even this in boarding-houses.

The Sabbath was not spent in studying Jehoiachin. It was full, but not
with attending church services. She did not stay in her cold little
room. She would have been glad to have been allowed to flee to that
refuge. Instead, she made her headquarters in Mrs. Morris’ room and from
there she began by degrees to order things about her, for Mrs. Morris
seemed to have placed all her dependence upon her. It was she who
answered the questions of Maggie about this thing and that, and who kept
the entire list of boarders from coming in to talk to Mrs. Morris and
commiserate her. She also cleared up the room and gave a touch of
something like decent care to the sick woman and her surroundings. Once
or twice the patient opened her eyes, looked around, seemed to see the
subtle difference, and then closed them again. Celia could not tell
whether it pleased her or whether she was indifferent. But it was not in
Celia’s nature to stay in a room and not make those little changes of
picking up a shoe and straightening a quilt and hanging clothing out of
sight. She did it as a matter of course.

Occasionally, when she had time to do so, she wondered what aunt Hannah
would think if she could see her now, and she smiled to think that this
was just what she seemed to have had to do all her life,—give up to
help other people. Then she thought perhaps it was the most blessed
thing that could happen to her.

Occasionally there would come to her a remembrance of that letter from
the lawyers, and she would wonder what it meant, and how she could
possibly go to work to find out.

Sunday evening she sat with her landlady for a couple of hours. The pain
seemed to be a little easier, though she had spent an intensely trying
day. She seemed worried and inclined to talk. Celia tried to soothe her
and persuade her to get calm for sleeping, but it was of no use.

“How can I sleep,” answered the woman impatiently, “with so many things
to fret about? Here am I on me back for the land knows how long, and the
doctor wanting me to go to the hospital. How can I go to the hospital?
What will become of me house, and me business if I up and off that way?
And then when I get well, if I ever do, what’s to become of me? Me house
would be empty, or me goods sold for grocery debts and other things, and
I should starve. I might as well take the chances of dying outright now
as that. I know I’d die in the hospital anyway, fretting about things.
That Maggie never could carry on things, even if I was only to be gone
two days. She never remembers to salt anything. Those two girls from
that three-cent store have been complaining about the soup to-day
already. They say it was just like dish water. And that German fellow
came and told me to-night, with me lying sick here, that he’d have to
leave if things didn’t improve. He said I ought to get better help!
Think of it! How am I going about to get help and me on me back not able
to stir? I don’t much care if he does leave, he always ate more than all
the rest of them put together. But land, if I should get well right away
and keep on, I don’t see where I’m coming to. There’s bills everywhere,
milk and meat and groceries and dry goods. I don’t know how I’m ever to
pay ’em. It’ll be just go on and pay a little, and get deeper into debt,
and pay a little of that and make more debt, till I come to the end
sometime, and I s’pose it might as well be now as any time.”

Poor Celia! She had no words ready for such trouble as this. Debt had
always been to her an awful thing, a great sin, never to be committed.
She never realized that there were people to whom to be in debt seemed
the normal way of living from day to day. She tried to think of
something comforting to say, for how could a woman get well with such a
weight as this on her mind? It would do no good to quote verses of
Scripture about taking no thought for the morrow, nor to quote that
sweet poem of hers about not bearing next week’s crosses. The poor woman
would not understand. She had not so lived in the past as to know how to
claim the promise of being cared for. She would scarcely understand if
Celia tried to tell her that if she would but cast her care now on Jesus
he would help her in some way at once. This was what she longed to say,
but her experience of the night before led her to fear saying anything
which might excite the poor nervous woman.

“How much money do you need to pay all your debts and set you straight
again?” she asked, thinking a little opportunity to go over her troubles
might quiet her.

“Oh, I don’t know,” wailed the poor woman. “If I just had a thousand
dollars, I’d sell out me business and go somewhere and get out of it.
Things seem to be getting worse and worse.” She began to cry feebly, and
Celia was at her wit’s end. Everything she said seemed to make matters
worse. Suddenly she began to sing in a low soft voice,

                     “Jesus, Saviour, pilot me,
                     Over life’s tempestuous sea.”

Her voice was sweet and pure, and the woman paused to listen while Celia
sang on until she fell asleep.




                              CHAPTER IV.


Celia discovered that the firm of lawyers who had written her, had their
office in a building not many blocks from Dobson and Co.’s store. She
felt anxious to find out what they wanted of her, and so the next
morning she obtained permission for a few minutes’ extra time at the
lunch hour and hastened there.

She reached the number at last, and searched the dirty sign board for
the names “Rawley and Brown.” There it was almost the last one on the
list, “Fourth floor, back.” She climbed up the four flights of stairs,
for the elevator was out of order and arrived panting before the dingy
office. When she entered the room, two elderly men sat at desks on which
were piled many papers, and each was talking with a client who sat near
his desk. They did not cease their talking with these men until Celia
had stood for some moments by the door. Then the elder of the two looked
over his glasses at her, and she ventured to say she was Miss Murray
come in response to their letter. She was given a chair and asked to
wait until Mr. Rawley was at leisure, and in the course of a few minutes
both the clients had withdrawn, and she was left alone with the two
lawyers. Over in the corner behind a screen, she could hear the click of
a typewriter and see the top of a frizzy head which she knew must belong
to the operator, probably the one who had written the letter to her.

Mr. Rawley at last turned to her and began a list of questions. Celia
answered everything she could, wondering when this mystery would be
explained. As soon as she had finished telling Mr. Rawley the names of
her different living relatives, he cleared his throat and looked at her
sharply and yet thoughtfully:

“Miss Murray,” said he, as if about to ask something very important,
“did you ever hear your father speak of having a great uncle?”

Celia paused to think a moment. She had been but ten years old when her
father died. She could remember some conversations between her father
and mother about relatives whom she had never seen. She searched her
mind.

“I’m not sure about the ‘_great_’ part of it. He might have been a great
uncle, but I know there was one father called uncle Abner. He must have
died long ago. He was a very old man then. I can remember father saying
laughingly to mother one day that he would never see anybody prettier
than she was, not if he lived to be as old as uncle Abner.”

“A-ahem!” said Mr. Rawley, uncrossing his feet and recrossing them again
and putting his two thumbs together as he looked at them seriously under
his bushy eyebrows. “Yes. Ah! Well, and did that uncle have
any—ah—heirs?”

Celia wanted to laugh. She had already begun to plan how she would make
aunt Hannah laugh by a letter she would write describing this interview
with the lawyers, but she kept her face straight and answered steadily.

“I do not know.”

“Well, I must say, my dear young lady,” remarked Mr. Rawley, after a
somewhat prolonged pause, “that your evidence is somewhat—that is to
say,—inadequate. You could hardly expect us, with so little to go
upon—that is to say, without more investigation, you could hardly
expect us——”

“You forget, sir,” said Celia, really laughing now, “that I have not the
slightest idea what all this is about. I expect nothing. I came here to
be informed.”

The old lawyer gave her another searching look and then seemed to
conclude that she was honest.

“Well, young lady, I think I may safely tell you this much. There was
property of Mr. Abner Murray’s, which naturally descended to his only
son. This son had been in India for years. He did not return at his
father’s death, and in fact his whereabouts was not definitely known,
until a very short time ago, when positive information of his death
without heirs was received. The property would then revert to Mr. Abner
Murray’s next of kin, and his heirs. Mr. Abner Murray had a brother, who
is supposedly your father’s father. If this should prove to be the case,
through his death and your father’s, his only heir, you being the only
living child of your father, the property would naturally fall to you.
Do you follow me closely?”

Celia looked at Mr. Rawley respectfully now and very gravely. The matter
had taken on a different aspect. It was a complete surprise. She had not
even in her wildest dreams allowed herself to hope for any such thing.
Fortunes only fell to girls in books, not to flesh-and-blood, hard
working, everyday girls.

She looked at the lawyer in silence a minute and then she smiled gravely
and said:

“That would be very nice if it’s true. I wish it might be. And now I
suppose you are done with me for the present, until you have
investigated the truth of my statements.”

Mr. Rawley seemed surprised that she took it so coolly and asked no more
questions. She rose as if to go. The truth was she had caught a glimpse
of the clock and she saw that she had barely time to reach her counter
before the limit of her nooning would be over, and she had had no lunch.
Her position might be forfeited if she exceeded her time. That was worth
to her at present all the mythical fortunes that the future might hold
for her. So, without more ado, she hurried away, and, not even stopping
for a single bite to eat, laid aside her wraps and was in her place
behind the counter when the minute hand pointed just one minute after
the time allotted her.

It was a very busy afternoon. She had not much time to think. Everybody
seemed to want ribbons. “Perhaps I shall be in a position to buy some of
these yards myself, instead of measuring them off for other people, some
time, if that old Mr. Rawley ever finds out whether _I_ am _I_,” she
thought to herself as she skillfully clipped off two yards of blue satin
and three yards of pink taffeta.

“Property!” he had said. What did property mean? Had great uncle Abner
left an old house standing somewhere, which would be of no earthly use
to anybody unless sold, and bring nothing then? Or perhaps it was some
musty old library. She had no faith that there was much money. Such
things did not run in their family. It would turn out to be very little.
But oh, what if it should be something worth while? What, for instance,
if it should be a thousand dollars! What might she not do? Why, a
thousand dollars would enable her to do some of the nice things she
longed so to do. She could bring aunt Hannah here to the city, and set
up a tiny home with her in it somewhere. With that much money to start
on, they could surely make their living, she in the store and aunt
Hannah at home sewing. It flashed across her mind that that was just the
sum Mrs. Morris had wished for. She had said if she only had a thousand
dollars she could pay her debts and have enough left to start on and get
out of her uncomfortable life.

How nice it would be if she, Celia, could have money enough to say, “I
have the thousand dollars, Mrs. Morris, and I will give it to you. You
may pay those people and go away to some more quiet, restful life.” Then
how delightful it would be to take that poor miserable boarding-house
and make it over. Make the boarders’ lives cheerful and pleasant, give
them healthful food and clean, inviting rooms to live in! What a work
that would be for a lifetime! If she ever did get rich, she believed she
would do just that thing. Hunt up the most wretched boarding-house she
could find and take it, boarders and all, and make it over. She believed
she could do it with aunt Hannah’s help. Aunt Hannah could cook and
plan, and she could execute and beautify. The thought pleased her so
well that she carried it out into details, during the long walk back to
her boarding-house that night. She even went so far as to think out what
she would give them for dinner the first night, and how the dining-room
should appear—and how their faces would look when they saw it all. What
fun it would be! Miss Burns should have something every night that would
tempt her appetite, and the poor old lady in the third story should be
given the very tenderest cut in the whole steak, so she need not tremble
so when she cut it. And there was that poor young school-teacher, he
needed rich creamy milk. She had heard him decline the muddy coffee
several times and once he asked if he might have a glass of milk, and
Maggie had told him they were all out of milk.

She debated whether she would retain her position in the store and
decided that she would for a time, because that would give her a chance
to carry out some plans without letting the boarders know who was at the
bottom of it all. Things should not be changed much at first, except
that everything should be made entirely clean and wholesome. Then
gradually they would begin to beautify. Perhaps the others would help in
it. Perhaps she could lure the young man from the dry goods store into
spending an evening at home and helping her. She had a suspicion that he
spent his evenings out, and remained late in places which did him no
good, to say the least. It would do no harm for her to try to get
acquainted with him and help him, even if she never got a fortune to
enable her to raise her neighbors into better things. She would begin
the reformation of young Mr. Knowles that very evening, if there came an
opportunity. With these thoughts and plans in mind she completed her
long walk in much shorter time than usual and with a lighter heart. It
did her good to have an interest in life beyond the mere duties of the
hour.

She found Mrs. Morris in much the same state of depression as on the day
before. The doctor had urged again that she go to the hospital for
regular course of treatment. She was as determined as ever that she
would not, or rather _could_ not do it. She wanted Celia to come and sit
with her. She had taken a liking to her new boarder, and she did not
hesitate to say so, and to declare that the others were an unfeeling set
who bothered her and didn’t care if she was sick. Celia tried to cheer
her up. She gave her a flower which one of the other workers in the
store had given her, and told her she would come up after dinner was
over. Then she went down to the table, and found Mr. Knowles seated
before his plate looking cold and coughing. She wondered if her
opportunity would come. His seat was at her left hand. They exchanged
some remarks about the weather, and Celia told him he seemed to have a
bad cold. He told her that was a chronic state with him, and then
coughed again as he tried to laugh. She entered into his mock gaiety,
and told him that if his mother were there she would tell him not to go
out that evening, in such damp weather and with that cough.

His face grew sober instantly, and he said very earnestly:

“I suppose she would.”

“Well, then, I suppose you’ll stay in, won’t you?” said the girl. “It
isn’t right not to take care of yourself. The wind is very raw to-night.
Your cough will be much worse to-morrow if you go out in it. You ought
to stay in for your mother’s sake, you know.”

It was a bow drawn at a venture. Celia stole a glance at him. He looked
up at her quickly, his handsome, gay face sober and almost startled.

“But mother isn’t here,” he said, his voice husky. “She died a year
ago.”

“But don’t you think mothers care for their sons even after they have
gone to heaven? I believe they do. I believe in some way God lets them
know when they are doing right. You ought to take care of yourself just
the same, even if she is not here, for you know she would tell you to do
it, now wouldn’t she?”

“Yes, I know she would,” he answered, and then, after a minute’s pause,
he added, “but it is so hard to stay in here. There is no place to sit
and nothing to do all the evening. Mother used to have things
different.”

“It _is_ hard,” said Celia, sympathizingly, “and this is a dreary place.
I’ve thought so myself, ever since I came. I wonder if you and I
couldn’t make things a little pleasanter for us all, if we tried.”

“How? I’m sure I never thought I could do anything in that line. How
would you go about it?”

“Well, I’m not just sure,” said Celia, thinking rapidly and bringing
forth some of her half made plans to select one for this emergency. “But
I think we ought to have a good light first. The gas is miserable.”

“You’re right; it is that,” responded Mr. Knowles.

“Didn’t I see a big lamp on the parlor table?”

“Yes, I think there is a lamp there, but it smokes like an engine, and
it gives a wicked flare of a light that stares at you enough to put your
eyes out.”

“Well, I wonder if we couldn’t do something to cure that lamp of
smoking. I’m somewhat a doctor of lamps myself, having served a long
apprenticeship at them, and I think if you’ll help me I’ll try. I have
some lovely pink crepe paper upstairs that I got to make a shade for my
room, but I’ll sacrifice that to the store if you can get me a new wick.
What do you say? Shall we try it? I’m sure Mrs. Morris won’t object, for
it will save gas, besides making things pleasanter for the boarders. I
have a book I think you will enjoy, after the lamp is fixed for reading.
If you are going to be a good boy and stay at home to-night I’ll bring
it down.”

The young man entered into the scheme enthusiastically. He was a very
young man, not more than nineteen, or Celia would not have cared or
dared to speak to him in this gay, half-commanding way. But she had been
used to boys, and to winning them to do what she wished, and she won her
way this time surely. The young man was only too glad to have something
to keep him in, and his heart was still very tender toward his lost
mother. Celia saw that he would not be hard to influence. She wished she
were wise and able to help him. Her soul felt with oppression the need
of all these other souls in this house with her, and she wished to be
great and mighty to lift them up and help them. How strange it was that
the way kept opening up before her for daily helping of others. She
seemed to be the only Christian in this house full of people. What a
weight of responsibility rested upon her if that was so. How she ought
to pray to be guided that she might be wise as a serpent and harmless as
a dove; that she might, if possible, bring each one of them to a
knowledge of Jesus Christ. And what was _she_ to do all this? A mere
weak girl, who was discouraged and homesick, and could not get enough
money together to keep herself from need, perhaps, nor grace enough to
keep her own heart from failing or her feet from falling. What was _she_
to think of guiding others? How could she do all this work? She must
shrink back from the thought. She could not do it. It was too much. Ah!
She might leave all that to her gracious Lord. She had forgotten that.
All he wanted her to do was to take the duty of the hour or the minute
and do it for him. What matter whether there were results that showed or
not so long as he was obeyed? When she slipped up to her room for that
pink crepe paper she knelt down and asked that it and the book and the
lamp and her little effort for the evening might be blessed. Then she
went down to conquer that lamp.




                               CHAPTER V.


“For the land sake! Yes,” said Mrs. Morris, turning wearily on her
pillow, “do what you please with it. I wish it was a good one. I’d like
to afford a real good one with a silk shade with lace on it, but I
can’t. There’s lots ought to be done here, but there’s no use talking
about it. I’m clean discouraged anyway. I wish I could sell out, bag and
baggage, and go to the poorhouse.”

“Oh, Mrs. Morris, don’t talk that way!” said Celia, brightly. “You’ll
get well pretty soon. Don’t think about that now. We’ll try to keep
things in order till you are able to see to them yourself. And meantime,
I believe I can make that lamp work beautifully. I’ll come back by and
by and report progress. Now eat that porridge. I know it can’t hurt you.
The doctor told me it would be good for you. I made it myself, and it’s
just such as aunt Hannah used to make for sick people. There’s nothing
like twice boiled flour porridge. Is it seasoned right? There’s the
salt.”

Then she flitted downstairs to the lamp.

Young Mr. Knowles was already on hand with the new wick he had purchased
at the corner grocery, having carefully taken the measure of the burner.

Celia with experienced hand soon had the lamp burning brightly. Frank
Hartley, the University student, had been attracted by the unusual light
and declared he would bring his books down to the parlor for a while. It
was cold as a barn in his room anyway. He and Harry Knowles stood by
watching with admiring eyes, as Celia’s fingers, now washed from the oil
of the lamp, manipulated the pretty rose-colored paper into a shade, and
when it was done, with a gathering string, a smoothing out on the edges
and a pucker and twist here and there, and then a band and bow of the
crepe paper, it all had looked so simple that they marveled at the
beauty of the graceful fall of ruffles, like the petals of some lovely
flower.

She put the promised book in Harry Knowles’ hand, a paper-covered copy
of “In His Steps,” and saying she would come down later to see what he
thought of the story, she slipped away to Mrs. Morris’ room. She must
get time to write to aunt Hannah some time to-night about her visit to
the lawyers, for aunt Hannah might have some evidence which would serve
her in good stead, but this duty to the sick woman came first. She
turned her head as she left the room and saw the two young men settling
themselves in evident comfort around the bright lamp. The
school-teacher, George Osborn, came in the front door just then, and
catching the rosy light from the room stepped in, looked around
surprised, then hung up his hat and went in to stand a minute before the
register to warm his hands. It was a touch of cheer he had not expected.
Presently he went upstairs and brought down a pile of reports he must
make out, and seated himself with the other two around that light.

Celia upstairs was telling Mrs. Morris about the lamp, how well it
burned, and giving a glowing account of the three young men seated
around it. Mrs. Morris listened astonished.

“Well, I’ve told them boys time an’ again that they ought to stay at
home, but they never would before. It must be some sort of a spell
you’ve worked on them. Of course, that teacher he stays up in his room a
lot. But he’s trying to support his mother and put his brother through
college, and you can’t expect much of him. He’ll just give himself up
entirely to them and that’ll be the end of his life. There’s always some
folks in this world have to be sacrificed to a few others. It’s the way
things are. I’m one of those meself, though the land knows who’s the
better for me being sacrificed. It does seem as if I had had to give up
every blessed thing I ever tried for in me life. Just set down a while.
I feel a little easier this evening and I’ve been a-doing a powerful lot
of worrying all day. I haven’t a soul to advise me that knows anything.
You seem to be made out of good stuff, and you’ve been real good to me,
and I just wish you’d tell me what you think I ought to do.”

Celia sat down. She wondered what could be coming next. It was strange
to have her advice asked this way. Coming out into the world alone to
earn one’s living places a great many responsibilities upon one
sometimes. She felt very incapable of advising. She felt she had not
wisdom to settle her own life, let alone another’s, and one so much
older than herself, that it would seem as if experience ought to have
taught her much. But she tried to be sympathetic, and told Mrs. Morris
to tell her all about it, and she would do the best she could. In her
heart she prayed the Father that she might have wisdom to answer wisely.

“Well, you see it’s this way. I’m just deep down in debt. I told you
that before. It’s been going on worse and worse every year, and every
year I’d hope by the next to make the two ends meet somehow. But they
never did. I’ve cut down and cut down. And then I got left two or three
times by boarders going off without paying what they owed after I had
trusted them a long time. There was that Mr. Perry now, he left that old
rickety organ. It was well enough to have an organ for the boarders, but
you see I couldn’t afford to have one. If I could have, I’d have bought
a new one, you know. Well, things like that have happened time and
again. Once a woman who recited pieces for a living came to the house.
She had a lot of dirty satin clothes, and afterward she left quite
suddenly and I never knew she was gone till a man came for her trunk. Of
course I got the trunk for her board. She had been here two months and
only paid one week’s board, kept putting me off and off. When I had that
trunk sold at auction it brought me in just one dollar and sixty-two
cents. What do you think of that? And she had the second story front
alone too; and _airs_, why she’d have her breakfast sent up every
morning about ten o’clock. She made me think she was a great woman.
Well, I learned better. But it does seem as though I’ve had more trouble
with folks. There was the time the woman was here with her little girl,
and the child took scarlet fever and the Board of Health came in and
sent everybody off, and scared them so ’twas a long time before I could
get them back. Well, there’s been a plenty of other things just like
that. You don’t wonder, do you, that I’m in debt? The worst of it is
it’s been getting worse and worse. That Maggie just wastes everything
she lays her hands on, and I don’t know’s I’d better myself any if I
tried to get somebody else. There’s always changes and new things to
buy. Now what would you do? You see it’s this way. I’ve got a sister out
west that lives by herself in a little village. She’s a widow and she’s
got enough to live on, and she’s written to me to come out and live with
her, and she thinks I could get a little sewing now and then, and I
could help her in her house. I can’t ask her for money, for I haven’t
got the face to, having asked her once before. Besides, she’s not one to
give out and out that way, even if she could afford to, which I guess
she can’t, though she’d be willing and glad to give me a home with her.
I’m too proud to borrow what I know I never could pay, and I won’t skip
out here as some would and leave me debts behind me. I’m honest,
whatever else I ain’t. Now what would you do? No, I don’t own this
house; if I did I’d been bankrupt long ago with the repairs it needs,
that I couldn’t get out of the landlord. But I took it for the rest of
the year, and the lease don’t run out till April, so you see I’m in for
that. It’s just the same old story. ‘A little more money to buy more
land, to plant more corn, to feed more hogs, to get more money, to buy
more land, to feed more hogs.’ Only, I always had a little less of
everything each time. Now Miss Murray, what would you do if it was you?”

“Haven’t you anything at all to pay with? No,”—she hesitated for a word
and the one she had heard that day came to her—“Haven’t you any
property of any sort? Nothing you could sell?”

Celia was always practical. She wanted to know where she stood before
she gave any advice. Mrs. Morris looked at her a moment in a dazed way,
trying to think if there was anything at all.

“No, not a thing except my husband’s watch and this old furniture. I
suppose I might sell out me business, but nobody would buy it and I’d
pity ’em, poor things, if they did.”

She talked a long time with the woman, trying to find out about
boarding-houses and how they were run. Before she was through she began
to have some inkling of the reason why Mrs. Morris had failed in
business and was so deeply in debt. She was only a girl, young and
without experience, but she felt sure she could have avoided some of the
mistakes which had been the cause of Mrs. Morris’ trouble. Finally, she
said in answer to the twentieth “What would you do if you was me?”

“Mrs. Morris, I don’t quite know till I have thought about it. I will
think and tell you to-morrow, perhaps, or the next day. It seems to me
though, that I would stop right now and not run on and get more deeply
in debt. That cannot better matters. I think somebody might buy your
things, and—some way might be found for you to pay your debts,—but, in
the first place, you must get well, and we’ll do the very best we can to
get on here till you are well enough to know what you will do. Now may I
read to you just a few words? And then you ought to go to sleep. Just
you rest your mind about all those things, and I promise you I will try
to think of something that will help you.”

She turned to the little Bible she had brought in with her and read a
few verses in the fourteenth chapter of John “Let not your heart be
troubled; ye believe in God, believe also in me.”

She was very tired when she reached her room that night. The letter she
intended to write to aunt Hannah was still unwritten. The book she had
taken from the public library to read was lying on her bureau untouched.
She had been bearing the burdens of other people, and the day had been
full of excitement and hard work. She threw herself on her bed, so
nervously tired that she felt convulsive sobs rising in her throat. What
had she done? She had promised to think up some way to help Mrs. Morris.
Mrs. Morris was nothing to her, why should she take this upon herself?
And yet she knew, as she asked herself these questions, that she had
felt all along that God had as truly called her to help that poor woman
as ever he had called her to sell ribbons for Dobson and Co., or to help
aunt Hannah with the mending. She had not wanted to do it, either. It
was very unpleasant work, indeed, in many ways, and had required
sacrifices of which she had not dreamed when she began. There was the
pretty lampshade she was planning to have. She had given that up for the
general good of the house. Now, when she got the lamp she intended to
buy at a cheap sale somewhere, she would have to wait till she could
afford more paper and a frame for her shade. Well, never mind! She
surely was repaid for that act, for those young men had enjoyed it. How
much pleasure a little thing can give! How many things there were about
that house which might be easily done to make things brighter and
pleasanter, and how much she would enjoy doing them,—if aunt Hannah
were only here! How nice it would be if she had some money and could buy
Mrs. Morris out and help the poor thing to get off to her relatives, and
then get to work and make that house cheerful and beautiful and a true
home for its present inmates. How aunt Hannah would enjoy that work too!
It was just such work as would fulfill that good woman’s highest dreams
of a beautiful vocation in life.

Suddenly Celia sat bolt upright on the hard little bed, and stared at
the opposite wall with a thoughtful, and yet energetic expression on her
face.

“What if it should!” she said aloud. “What if there should be some
money, say as much as a thousand dollars, and maybe a little over, for
an allowance lest we might run behind. Wouldn’t that be grand! Oh, you
dear old uncle Abner, if it proves true, and if you up in heaven can
see, I hope you know how happy you’ll make several people. I’ll do it, I
surely will! And aunt Hannah shall come and run the house and be the
housekeeper, and maybe we can get old Molly, for I’m certain we never
could do a thing with that Maggie, she’s so terribly dirty, and Molly
would leave anywhere to be with aunt Hannah! There now, I’m talking just
as if I was a ‘millionairess’ and could spend my millions. I ought not
to have thought of this, for it will turn my head. I shall be so
disappointed when Mr. Rawley tells me, to-morrow or next day, that I’m
not myself, or that the property is some old hen house and a family cat,
that I’m afraid I shall not be properly thankful for the cat. I wonder
if it isn’t just as bad to take up the happy crosses for the coming year
as the uncomfortable ones. I wonder how that is. I must think about it.
Meanwhile, aunt Hannah must be written to, for Mr. Rawley wanted those
marriage certificates she has, and somehow I feel quite happy.” She
sprang from the bed and jumped around her room in such a lively fashion
that Miss Burns who roomed below wondered what was the matter.

Writing to her aunt sobered her down somewhat. She began to think of
herself a little.

“Celia Murray, do you know what you are doing?” This was what she heard
whispered to her from behind. “You have come to the city to earn your
living, and you have come here to board, not to nurse sick landladies,
nor to become a guardian angel for stray young men, nor to exercise the
virtue of benevolence. You must think of yourself, somewhat. How in the
world will you ever be fit for your work if you spend so much time and
energy on working for other people and staying up nights? Had you not
better seek out another boarding-house? There must be plenty in this
city, and probably if you looked about a little you might find one where
you would have more conveniences and a better room and board. Leave Mrs.
Morris to get along the best way she can. You are not responsible for
her. She is a grown woman and ought to know enough to take care of
herself. Anyway, she is only suffering the consequences of her
foolishness. Better try to-morrow to find another boarding-house.”

Yet, even as Celia heard these words spoken in a tempting voice, she
knew she would not go. She was not made of that kind of stuff. Besides
she was interested. Whatever her cross for the coming week was to be, it
would not be one to her to remain here now and help work out God’s
plans, if she might be permitted so to do.

“And if it might only please my King to lift my head up out of prison
and set me up where I might help others in this boarding-house, I would
try to make as good a use of my liberty and my allowance as Jehoiachin
did. I wonder what he did do with his allowance anyway. And it must have
been such a pleasant thing to him to know, to fully understand that his
allowance would not fail all the days of his life. I wonder if he got
downhearted sometimes, and feared lest Evil-merodach might die and leave
him in the lurch, or whether he might turn against him some day. Now
with me it is so different. My King is all-powerful. What he has
promised, _I know_ he will perform. I need never dread his dying, for he
is everlasting. I can trust him perfectly to give me an allowance all
the days of my life of whatever I need. And yet, daily and hourly I
distrust, and fear and tremble, and dread lest I may be left hungry some
day. What a strange contradiction, what an ungrateful, untrustful,
unworthy child of the King I am.”

Then she turned out her light and knelt to pray.




                              CHAPTER VI.


It is said that Satan trembles when he sees the weakest saint upon his
knees. It is probably true that he also hies him away to take counsel
with his evil angels to see if they cannot by some means overtake that
saint in his resolves and endeavors, and make him tremble, and perhaps
fall. It certainly seemed to Celia the next morning as if everything had
conspired to make her life hard.

In the first place it was raining. A cold, steady drizzle, that bade
fair to continue all day and for several days, if it did not turn into
snow. The furnace, none too good at any time, was illy managed. Mrs.
Morris usually regulated it herself, but Maggie made a poor hand at it.
She chose this morning to forget to see to it at all until the fire had
gone out. There was no time to build it up then, for she had breakfast
to get for the boarders who must be off to their work at their appointed
hours. Celia dressed quickly, for her room was so cold she was in a
shiver. With her blue fingers she tried to turn the pages of her Bible
to read a few words while she combed her hair, but finally gave it up
she was so cold. She was sleepy, too, for she had lost much sleep of
late, and it was hard to get up before it was fairly light and hurry
around in the cold. Life looked very hard and dreary to her. She thought
of aunt Hannah getting breakfast for Nettie’s family, and buttoning the
children’s clothes between times. Somehow the thought of aunt Hannah
weighed heavily upon her this morning. She could not get away from it.
It brought a sob in her throat and a pain at her heart. Why did they
have to separate? It was cruel that life was so. The tears came to her
eyes. She jerked a snarl out and broke two teeth of her comb at the same
time. This did not serve to help her temper. She did hate to use a comb
with the teeth out and once out there was no putting them back. Neither
could she afford a new comb for some time to come. She glanced at her
plain little silver watch and saw it was later than she usually rose,
and she hurried through her toilet as much as possible, and ran
downstairs to the dining-room. The German stood at the dining-room door,
an expression of belligerence on his face and his attitude one of
displeasure. He filled up the door so completely that Celia was obliged
to ask him to let her pass before he moved. She was indignant at him for
this. She found herself likening him to one of the animals condemned in
the Bible. It was unchristian of course, but Celia did not feel in a
very sweet spirit this morning. She recalled what Mrs. Morris had said
and wished the German would leave the house. He looked like a man whom
it was impossible to please anyway. But she found the cause of his
displeasure was that there was no breakfast forthcoming as yet. Mr.
Knowles came down, greeted her pleasantly, looked at the empty table,
and the clock, filled his pocket with some crackers on a plate there,
and remarked that he guessed he would skip, that it was as much as his
place was worth if he did not get to the store on time, and he would
have to run all the way to the car to make it now, it was so late. Celia
felt indignant that this young man was obliged to go to a hard day’s
work unfed. But there was nothing to be done now, he must go. It was the
hard fate of the wage-earner. He must be on time, if the house fell. She
went to the kitchen door and peered in. Maggie was slamming about in a
grand rage. The biscuits she was baking were not even beginning to brown
yet, as Celia saw by a glimpse into the oven door when Maggie opened it
and slammed it shut. There was some greasy-looking hash cooking slowly.
It did not look as if it ever would be done at the present rate it was
cooking. The stove looked sulky and the ashes were not yet taken up.

“Maggie,” she said, “can I help you get something on the table? These
people all have to go to work and so do I. If we can’t eat in five
minutes we’ll have to go without.”

“Well, then, go without!” said Maggie, rising in a towering passion.
“I’m sure it won’t hurt you fine folks once in a while. I never hired
out to do everything and I ain’t responsible. I’ll get the breakfast as
soon as I can and not a bit sooner, and you can get out of my kitchen. I
don’t want you bothering ’round. I get all flustered with so many folks
coming after me. Go on out now, and wait till yer breakfast’s ready. And
tell the rest I won’t cook any dinner fer ’em, if a soul comes in this
kitchen again.”

Celia retreated, indignant and outraged. To be spoken to in such a
manner when she was but offering help was an insult. It was a
peculiarity of hers that when she felt angry the tears would come to her
eyes. They came now. It was exasperating. She went quickly to the window
to hide them, and looked out in the dim little brick alley that ran
between the houses and watched the rain drop all over the bricks. There
was a blank brick wall of the next house opposite her, and a little
further toward the front she could see a window and some one standing at
it. She turned quickly away again. There was no refuge there. Taking in
at a glance the table with its unbrushed crumbs, and the dishes of
uncooked hash and underdone biscuits that Maggie was just bringing in,
she resolved to follow the example of Mr. Knowles and take some
crackers. Then seizing her hat and coat from the hall rack where she had
put them, on coming downstairs, she started for the store. It was a
long, cold walk and she got very wet, but she did not feel justified in
spending the five cents which would have carried her there. In her
present mood she had no faith in uncle Abner’s fortune. It would
probably turn out to be some poor land somewhere which would never be
worth a cent. That was the kind of inheritance which usually came to any
one in their family, like the lot in a new town out west that was left
to aunt Hannah by her eldest brother, where the city authorities
compelled property holders to pave the streets and pay large taxes and
where there were no purchasers. Such inheritances one was better off
without. She felt very bitter in her heart. As she walked along in the
rain, she remembered that she had forgotten to kneel by her bedside in
prayer before she left her room that morning, it was so cold and late.
She knew that must be the reason why she felt so cross and unreasonable,
and she tried to pray as she walked along in the rain, but there were
many things to distract her thoughts, and she had to watch carefully
that she did not run into some one with her umbrella turned down in
front of her to keep off the driving rain. She thought of aunt Hannah
again, now probably washing the breakfast dishes, or doing some sewing
or ironing, and she sighed and felt that earth was wet and cold and
dreary. Half-way to the store, she encountered a little newsboy who
followed by her side, and begged her to buy a paper. He looked hungry.
His feet were out at the toes from his shoes, much too large. Celia had
no money to buy a paper and she answered the boy in a decided negative
that made him turn hopelessly away. It made her cross to see his need,
when she had no power to help him. She realized how cross her voice had
been and that vexed her. Then she blindly stepped into a mud puddle and
splashed the water over the tops of her shoes. She shivered as she felt
the dampness through the thin leather of her boot, and wondered what she
would do when the inevitable sore throat, which always with her resulted
from getting her feet wet, arrived. And so she hurried on, tugging after
her the heavy cross which she had carefully made that morning for
herself to carry, out of bits of her own and other people’s troubles,
and letting it spoil the sweet peace God had sent her, and soil the
clean heart he had washed from sin for her. It was too bad. Her guardian
angel pitied her that she could so soon forget her high resolves, and
her heavenly Father.

Matters were no better when she reached the store. One of the girls who
belonged at the ribbon counter with her was sick. Celia had to do her
duty and the girl’s also. This might not have been so bad if she had
been left to herself, but the head of that department, a young woman
with a sour expression and disappointed eyes, was also out of temper,
and did her ordering in an exceedingly disagreeable manner. She found a
great deal of fault and kept demanding of Celia more than she could well
accomplish in a given time. Celia had hoped it would not be a busy day
on account of the rain, but on the contrary every woman in town seemed
to be in need of ribbon and to have hit upon that particular rainy
morning in which to shop, thinking doubtless that the others would stay
at home and leave the store to her. When the noon hour came Celia was
cut down to half time on account of the rush, and obliged to take a few
precious minutes of that in putting up some ribbons left carelessly on
the counter by another saleswoman who had gone to her luncheon leaving
them there. To the young girl new to her work, and fresh from a home
where every _necessary_ comfort at least had been hers, it was a long,
hard day, and she looked forward with no hope of a let-up to the evening
that was to follow. She grew crosser as the day began to wane, and she
grew hungry, and then faint, and then lost both those feelings and
settled down to a violent headache. It was then that a new cause for
trouble loomed up before her imagination. What if she should get sick?
Who would take care of her and how should she live? Aunt Hannah would
have to come, and what an expense that would be!—No, aunt Hannah could
not come. There was no money anywhere to pay her fare, or her board when
she got there, and she was bound to stay with Nettie and Hiram as long
as they were supporting her. She would have to get along without telling
aunt Hannah. What would become of her? Oh, why of course, she would have
to go to the hospital among strangers and be nursed, and perhaps die,
and aunt Hannah never hear and then worry and worry and no one would
tell her.

It was just in the midst of these thoughts that there came the clear
voice of the floor walker:

“Miss Murray, will you step to the office a moment. There is a message
there for you, a special delivery letter I believe.”

With her heart throbbing violently at thought of the possibilities
contained in a special delivery letter, she walked the length of the
long store. Aunt Hannah must be sick and they had sent for her. Surely
they would do that if aunt Hannah should be so ill she needed care, for
Nettie would never care for her, she was no nurse and hated sick rooms.
Besides, to be perfectly honest, Nettie would have enough to do in
caring for her home and children. There was no hospital in the little
town where Hiram lived, so he would, of course, rather pay her fare and
keep her while she did the nursing than to hire some one to care for
aunt Hannah. All this reasoning went clearly through her brain, as she
walked swiftly in the direction of the office. It seemed as if the
writing of her name on the receipt book was one of the longest actions
she ever performed, and her hand trembled so when she retired to the
little cloak room to read her letter that she could scarcely open the
envelope, nor take in at first that the letter bore Rawley and Brown’s
printed heading. And then she read just a few lines from them asking her
to call once more upon them and as soon as possible. She went back to
her place among the ribbons feeling almost angry with Rawley and Brown
that they had frightened her so, and yet relieved that there was nothing
the matter with aunt Hannah.

It was nearly five o’clock, and the crowd of women who were doing rainy
day shopping had gone home. The rain was pouring down harder than ever.
The store was comparatively empty. Perhaps she might get away for a few
moments now; she would ask. Permission was granted her, as she had had
only half her noon hour, and she hurried up to the dark little office
again.

She found that she was not too late, for Mr. Rawley had not yet gone
home, though he had his overcoat on as if about to depart. It appeared
that he wished to ask a few more questions to establish certain facts.
Celia answered them as best she could, and then as he seemed to be
through with her, she asked timidly:

“Would you be so kind as to tell me what this is all about, anyway? You
said there was property. If it should turn out to be mine, what would it
be? I suppose you do not mind giving me a general idea of that, do you?”

He looked at her almost kindly under his shaggy brows. “Why no, child!”
he said. “That’s perfectly proper, of course. Why, I haven’t the exact
figures in my head, but it’s several thousands, well invested, and an
old farm up in New York state that’s well rented. There would be enough
to give a pretty good income every year you know, and if you left the
investments as they are, it would be a continuous one, for they are not
likely to fail or fall through. Then, too, there is a considerable
accumulation owing to the doubt about the heir. I hope you’ll turn out
to be that heir and I have no doubt you will. Good-afternoon.” Celia
tripped down the dark old staircase as if it were covered with the
softest carpet ever made. Several thousands! What wealth! What luxury!
She had wished for one single thousand, and her Father had sent her not
one, but many. For she began to believe now that the money was hers. All
the evidence seemed to point that way. The lawyer seemed to be
convinced, and it needed only the coming of a few documents in
possession of her uncle Joseph’s old lawyer to corroborate what she had
told him. She felt pretty sure that it was all true. And here she had
been cross and growling all day, and worse than that, she had been
carrying crosses not meant for her shoulders, and probably leaving
undone the things God had laid out for her to do. What wickedness had
been hers. Only last night she had knelt in earnest consecration, and
now to-day she had fallen so low as almost to forget that she had a
Father whose dear child she was, and who was caring for her. Could she
not retrieve some of the lost day? She had but one hour left in the
store. She would try what she could do. She smiled on the beggar child
who stood looking wistfully in at the pretty things, in the store window
as she passed in to her work. When she reached the ribbon counter again,
she found the head of the department looking very tired, and complaining
of a headache. There were other burdens besides her own she could bear.
She might offer to do her work for her and let her rest, and she could
bring her a glass of water. It was not her business to put up certain
ribbons not in her own case, but she could do it for the other girl who
was absent and save the head girl. As she made her fingers fly among the
bright silks and satins, she wondered if there were more burdens for her
to bear for others when she reached the boarding-house, and whether Mrs.
Morris would be better to-night and able to sit up and direct things a
little, and then there came to her mind the joyous thought that perhaps
she was to have the means soon to make that house permanently better in
some ways and help its inmates. How light her heart and her shoulders
felt now that she had laid down that heavy self-imposed cross! It was
wonderful! Oh, why could she not learn to trust her Master? The verse of
a loved hymn came and hummed itself over in her mind.

                 “Fearest sometimes that thy Father
                           Hath forgot?
                 When the clouds around thee gather,
                           Doubt him not!
                 Always hath the daylight broken—
                 Always hath he comfort spoken—
                   Better hath he been for years,
                           Than thy fears.”




                              CHAPTER VII.


Miss Hannah Grant sat in her room under the eaves darning little
Johnnie’s stocking. Her hair was grey and rippled smoothly over her
finely shaped head. Her sweet face wore a sad, far-away expression. It
had grown habitual with her ever since she had come to live with her
niece Nettie. Perhaps a close observer would see that the sadness was a
shade deeper this afternoon. Her eyes were deep grey and seemed to go
well with her hair. She gave one the impression of being able to see
further with them than most people, and there was a luminousness about
them that lit up her otherwise plain face, and made it truly beautiful.
Her gown was plain and old and grey. She always wore grey dresses. They
had been becoming long ago in the days when it mattered whether she wore
becoming things, and now that she cared no more about the becomingness,
she wore them for sweet association’s sake, and for the sake of one long
gone who used to admire them when she wore them. She did not seem to
know that they still suited her better than any other color, or absence
of color, could have done.

The hole was large and ill-shaped, for Johnnie was hard on his
stockings, but she darned it patiently back and forth, and seemed to be
thinking of something else. Once she laid it down and went to the closet
for her little grey worsted shawl to throw around her shoulders, for the
room was heated only by a drum from the stove downstairs and she felt
chilly. She usually sat in the sitting-room in the afternoon to sew or
mend, but there had been a reason for her coming up here to-day. She had
settled herself as usual by the west window downstairs to get a good
light on her work. She had a large peach basket full of stockings by her
side, and her workbasket on the window. The baby, creeping about the
floor, had upset the peach basket and scattered its contents around, and
Nettie, coming down just then in a new red cashmere shirt waist she had
finished the day before, had jerked him unceremoniously away from among
the stockings and hastily bundled them all into the basket, shoving it
behind aunt Hannah’s chair and out of her reach. As she did so, she
remarked in a disagreeable tone that she wished aunt Hannah wouldn’t
bring that old thing into the sitting-room. Couldn’t she bring a pair of
stockings at a time, and not litter up the whole room? She was expecting
Mrs. Morgan and her sister in with their embroidery and crocheting, and
she did like to have things look a little nice. Aunt Hannah had meekly
disposed of the stocking basket behind her ample apron, and there had
been silence in the room for a few minutes. Then young Mrs. Bartlett
remarked:

“Aunt Hannah, I think you had better go and change your dress, if you
are going to sit there. That old grey thing doesn’t look very well. I
wish to goodness you had a black silk, or something, like other folks.
You always waste your money on grey things when you have to buy
anything. It’s a dreadfully gloomy color. It makes you look sallow, too,
now you’re getting older.”

Nettie had gone out in the kitchen then for a minute and returned just
as aunt Hannah was starting upstairs with the darning basket.

“Aunt Hannah!” she called, “take your shawl and bonnet up with you,
won’t you? I s’pose you’d just as soon keep them up there, wouldn’t you?
Hiram says he hates to see the hall rack cluttered up so.”

Aunt Hannah put down the basket on the stairs, descended swiftly,
gathered her shawl and bonnet and one or two other belongings of hers
which were downstairs, in inconspicuous places, and carried them all
upstairs. She was not in the habit of leaving her bonnet and shawl on
the rack, and had only done so last night when she came in from prayer
meeting, because she had buckwheat cakes to set before going to bed, and
when that was done and she started to take them away, Nettie had asked
her to carry a lamp and two comfortables up for her, and in doing so the
shawl and bonnet had escaped her notice. It was a little thing, and she
realized that the hall rack looked better without her shawl and bonnet,
but somehow it was one of the many little things that gave her the
feeling that she had no home. She had put them all meekly away and sat
down in her little cold room near the drum to darn. She had done what
she was asked to do with one exception. She did not change her dress and
go down again. She saw that Nettie would like to have her out of the way
for the afternoon, and she did not wish to remain where she was not
wanted. She did not sigh as some women would have done. Instead, her
eyes took on that far-away look. She was beginning to long so sorely for
the open gates of her home above where she need never more feel that
desolation of not belonging, and where she would meet loved ones, and
above all her Father, face to face. Yet she knew her heavenly Father was
with her, even in this home where she was treated as a burden, and she
could be content to stay and do his bidding, only sometimes that great
longing for the face to face view grew upon her till her heart ached
with the desire to go.

In her bureau drawer, safe hid in tissue paper in a white box smelling
of rose leaves there were some letters, and an old daguerreotype. The
picture was in an old-fashioned leather frame that closed with a little
brass hook, and was lined with stamped purple velvet. The face inside
was of a young man with sweet, serious eyes, a grave, handsome face,
smoothly shaven, heavy, dark hair tossed back from a high white
forehead, and the dress of the olden time—a high rolling collar and
stock. The letters were from this man to Hannah Grant, written when he
was in the theological seminary, and they contained bright glad plans
for their future, Hannah’s and his. They might not have seemed bright to
some women, for they were planning, so soon as he had finished his
ministerial training, to go to the Foreign Mission field and work
together for the Master they both loved better than anything else. And
next to him they had loved each other. How bright her life had seemed to
her then as she did her daily duties; sang about them; thought of the
future and wrote her happy letters; and thanked the Lord daily that she
was to be permitted to do his work in this honorable way. The time had
gone by rapidly then, and the years of study had been completed.
Hannah’s wedding day was set, her simple lovely wedding gown was
finished, and it was grey. He loved grey. It had little touches of soft
white about the throat and wrists, just enough to bring out the coloring
of Hannah’s delicately cut face. And then,—suddenly there happened one
of those mysteries of the kingdom which we shall understand by and by,
and to which now we can only say “It is the Lord, let him do what
seemeth him best,” and trust. The earnest young missionary was taken up
higher, there to receive his reward. His bride, when she could rally
from the shock of this sudden ending of her life joy, bowed to the will
of him to whose keeping she had long ago given her will and her life,
and was enabled to say with tears of triumph that like that man of God
of old her beloved had “walked with God and was not, for God took him.”

She had thought even then to go alone, and take the message of Jesus to
those who knew him not, and bear her sorrow more easily by thinking she
could do some of the work which they would have done together. But God
opened another door for her and showed her plainly that he had called
her to a duty at home, and so she took her saddened heart, her sweet
face and her tender ways to her sister’s motherless little children and
had lived there ever since. Sometimes now, when she thought how she was
not wanted in this home, and yet could not go anywhere else by force of
circumstances, she would take out that pictured face and wonder if James
could know how she was being treated what he would think and feel about
it, and think how he would guard her from the world and shield her if he
were only here. And then she would be glad that he could not know, or
that if he could, he was where he knew it would not any of it be for
long, and that she would soon come home to be with Jesus and with him
forevermore, and that time to him was only a brief space. It was at such
times that her eyes would take on their far-away look.

So she sat and worked and thought that afternoon. In due course of time
the expected visitors arrived. The woman upstairs heard their voices,
and presently they drew nearer to the stove in the sitting-room. Their
talk could be quite distinctly heard now, but Hannah was absorbed in her
own thoughts, and she paid no attention as they gossiped on about this
one and that, with “You don’t say sos,” and “Well, I always thought as
muchs,” and “Did-she-say thats,” until she heard Nettie say, “Yes, she
will stay with us this winter anyway. No, it isn’t quite as pleasant as
to be alone you know, but then what could we do? She had no home to go
to. My husband wanted my cousin to come, too, though it was more than we
really could afford to do to feed and clothe two more, but she was very
ungrateful, and wanted to have her own way and see the world a little. I
expect she’ll come back humbly enough when she’s been away a couple of
weeks longer, and if she does I’m sure I don’t know what in the world we
shall do with her. Oh yes, aunt Hannah helps me a little here and there,
but you can’t ask much of people that are getting on in years. (Aunt
Hannah was forty-nine.) My father always kept her in luxury as she was
my mother’s only sister. Yes, people do get spoiled sometimes that way.
But, dear me, all she can do wouldn’t make up for the outgo. Yes, she
was a sort of acting housekeeper in our home after mother died, but you
know no one can ever take a mother’s place. (Johnnie, shut that door and
go away and stop your coaxing, or I’ll take you upstairs and give you a
good spanking. No, you _can’t_ go down by the pond to play to-day.) No,
I never had so much to do with her as the younger children. I was the
elder daughter, you know.”

Aunt Hannah quickly and noiselessly moved away from her position by the
drum to the other side of the room. And this from the little girl she
had so carefully mothered, and tended, and tried to train! And had
loved, too, for Hannah Grant loved all that God loved and placed in her
way. Ah, this was hard! And must she go on living here and knowing that
she was not wanted, that she was a burden, and that lies—yes, actually
lies, for there was no use trying to call them by a softer name—were
being told to the people in the village about her? How could she? She
could see just how it would go on from year to year. Hiram would come in
cross at night and either ignore her altogether, or else contradict
every word she spoke, and find fault with anything he knew she had done,
in a surly, impersonal way, which he knew and she knew he meant for her.
The children would grow up to disrespect her, as they were beginning to
do already. And her dear Celia! She was toiling bravely far away from
her! There was no prospect of anything better for years to come, perhaps
never so long as she lived. She knelt down by her bed, and prayed for a
long time. Then she arose quietly and went back to her window, a
chastened look upon her face. This was not more than he had helped her
to bear before. Indeed, it was not nearly so much. It was what Jesus had
himself borne, being despised and rejected of men. She darned on till
the room grew dark, and then she sat in the twilight and thought. She
could not bring herself to go downstairs yet, not till she must to get
supper. She thanked the Lord she had a room to herself where she might
take refuge alone and think of him. It was seldom that aunt Hannah had
had even this privilege in the daytime since she had come to live with
Nettie, there was always so much to be done, and Nettie seemed to expect
it to be done quickly.

The company below had departed, but Miss Grant took no heed. She sat and
watched the grey sky grow into night. There was no sunset. It had been a
grey day. There was not even a point of light to make the sky lovely. It
sank into darkness quietly, soberly, unnoticed and unlovely. She thought
it was like herself. But then there had been some reason why God had not
made a bright sunset to-night, and there surely was some reason why he
had wanted her life grey instead of rose-colored. She sighed just a
little, and now that the darkness had stolen softly upon her, she let a
tear have its way down her cheek.

Downstairs Nettie was growing restless. Hiram came in a little earlier
than usual with a sour look and asked how long it would be before
supper. Nettie said it would not be long, and wondered why aunt Hannah
did not come downstairs. Hiram remarked that if the old woman was
getting lazy and taking on fine-lady airs they had better give her a
warning, for he couldn’t support her for nothing. He threw a letter for
her upon the table while Nettie was lighting the lamp. Nettie took it
up, glanced at the writing, and then sent Johnnie up with it and told
him to tell aunt Hannah his father had come and wanted his supper right
away.

“It’s from Celia again,” she said, in a contemptuous tone. “She wastes
more money on postage. I don’t think it’s right to do that in her
position. If she has any extra money she better save it up and help with
supporting aunt Hannah. A great fat letter, too. I don’t see what she
finds to write about. This is the third one this week. It’s perfectly
absurd!”

But aunt Hannah did not hear what they said, she was not sitting near
the drum, and would not again, even if she was cold.

Johnnie came down and reported that aunt Hannah had a light in her room
and Nettie rattled the stove with all her might, and slammed the dishes
around more than was necessary, but still aunt Hannah did not come, and
finally Nettie began to get supper herself. She sent Johnnie up again
pretty soon to tell aunt Hannah she wished she would come downstairs,
that she needed her, and Johnnie came back and said aunt Hannah told him
to tell mamma she would be down pretty soon, she could not come just
now.

“Well, really!” said Hiram, looking up from his paper, “seems to me she
is putting on airs at a great rate. If I were you, Nettie, I would just
sit down and wait till she comes. I wouldn’t get supper at all. If you
haven’t the grit to tell her to come down now when you send for her,
I’ll do it for you.”

But Nettie rattled the stove and the dishes and managed to get supper
ready pretty soon. She did not quite understand her aunt. This was a new
development. Never in all the years she had known her and been cared for
by her had aunt Hannah ever refused a request for help. It must be
something serious. Was she sick? Nettie had some little heart left in
her, and it irritated her to have her husband speak so of her relatives,
so she bristled up at him, while she made the coffee.

“You’ll not do any such thing, Hiram Bartlett. I guess she has a right
to stay in her room once in a while. I’m sure I never knew her to do the
like before in the whole of her life. If she was your aunt, you wouldn’t
speak of her in that way. I think you ought to be a little grateful for
the way she took care of you last week when you were so sick, and me
with the baby sick, too. If she hadn’t been here I should have had my
hands more than full. I don’t know what I should have done. Johnnie,
make that baby stop crying! Lillie, pick that doll up off the floor! I
keep walking over something of yours all the time. I s’pose Celia’s got
into some trouble and aunt Hannah’s worried about her. I expected as
much. That girl hadn’t experience enough of the world to go off to the
city alone. Somebody ought to have taken her home to live. If one of the
boys had been married she could have gone with them, but the boys are so
selfish they never think of other people. If you had any sense of the
fitness of things you’d have done it yourself.”

They talked on in a wrangling way until supper was ready, but it was not
until they had nearly finished the evening meal that the hall door
opened and aunt Hannah walked in.




                             CHAPTER VIII.


Aunt Hannah had lighted her lamp a few minutes after the light of the
day went out, to get a little comfort from her Bible before going
downstairs to face her trials, for it must be confessed that aunt Hannah
had not had a cross so heavy to bear in many a year, as it was for her
to go downstairs that night and face Hiram and Nettie calmly after the
words she had heard her niece speak. She had tried to think of all the
comfort in the Bible as she sat in the twilight. She had a great store
of the precious words to draw from, for her Bible had ever been her
chief delight. She knew just where to turn in her memory for the right
help and it came trooping forth.

“Fear thou not; for I am with thee: be not dismayed; for I am thy God: I
will strengthen thee; yea, I will help thee; yea, I will uphold thee
with the right hand of my righteousness. . . . When thou passest through
the waters, I will be with thee; and through the rivers, they shall not
overflow thee: when thou walkest through the fire, thou shalt not be
burned. . . . God is faithful, who will not suffer you to be tempted
above that ye are able; but will with the temptation also make a way to
escape, that ye may be able to bear it. . . . Blessed is the man that
endureth temptation: for when he is tried, he shall receive the crown of
life, which the Lord hath promised to them that love him. . . . For I
reckon that the sufferings of this present time are not worthy to be
compared with the glory which shall be revealed in us. . . . All things
work together for good to them that love God. . . . To be conformed to
the image of his Son. . . . If God be for us, who can be against us?
. . . Nay in all these things we are more than conquerors through him
that loved us.”

Then she lighted the lamp to search out another promise, for it seemed
to her as if just to look upon the words would somehow help her. It was
at that moment Johnnie brought up Celia’s letter. She opened it quickly,
the anticipation of another trouble arising in her mind, for what might
not have happened to Celia so far away in that great city alone, since
the last letter she wrote?

It was a thick letter and she read it slowly through, taking no thought
of time because the matter it contained absorbed her mind completely,
and when Johnnie came up the second time, she had something new to think
about which demanded immediate attention and had claims prior to any
downstairs. The letter read thus:

    “DEAR AUNT HANNAH:

    “Do you remember the words on the little bookmark you sent me
    for my birthday? I know you do, for you have a way of hiding all
    such words away in that wonderful memory of yours. You know the
    heading was about an allowance, from the king, a continual
    allowance. When I read it I knew just what you meant by sending
    it to me. You wanted to remind me that my King had plenty of
    extra strength to give me, and that he had promised to furnish
    me with enough for every day of my life to bear that day’s
    trials. It did help me, for I knew I was trying to bear some of
    them all by myself, and that I often and often forget that I do
    not have to take up next year’s crosses and worry about them.
    But I remember, when I first read the words, I couldn’t help
    longing deep down in my heart, that I could have a real earthly
    allowance of money, just solid hard dirty money, coming in every
    week, and every month, and every year, and enough to supply all
    the actual needs so that I might live with you and work for you
    and have you all to myself. Then I felt indeed that my head
    would be lifted up out of prison forever—for I read the chapter
    about Jehoiachin as you meant I should, you dear good
    auntie—and it helped me too. You see I had been taking up a big
    heavy cross for the year to come for you. I didn’t feel happy
    about you there at Hiram’s, for in spite of me I cannot like
    Hiram’s ways and I don’t believe you do. I know for one thing,
    and a very small thing, that you hate tobacco smoke and have
    never been used to it, and yet Hiram smokes all over the house
    whenever he pleases, without even so much as caring whether it
    is repulsive to you or not. In fact, I am wicked enough to
    suspect that he might do it the more, just because you don’t
    like it, to show you he is master of his own house. I am so
    sorry I have to feel that way about my cousin-in-law, but I
    can’t help it. There is this comfort about it, I don’t believe
    Nettie minds, and as she is the one that has to be his wife and
    go through life with him, it is a relief to think she doesn’t.
    But there! That is all out of the way, and unchristian, and I
    have been too much blessed to allow myself to say anything
    unchristian about any one. Only I did want you to understand
    that I appreciated how hard it was for you to cheerfully accept
    Nettie’s proposal and go to live with her for a few years. I did
    not say so then because I thought any words would only make it
    harder to bear, and I know my own dear auntie’s old way of
    always finding a thing easier to bear if she succeeds in making
    other people think she is perfectly happy. That is just one way,
    and the only way in which you ever are the least little bit
    dishonest.

    “But I must hurry on with my main theme which has not even been
    hinted at yet. And I have a great deal to write, and must get it
    in to-night, for I cannot bear to have you wait a minute longer
    than is necessary to hear the good news.

    “In the first place, you are not to stay at Nettie’s another
    day—that is not unless you prefer to, of course—but you are to
    pack up every scrap that belongs to you and take the first train
    to Philadelphia, sending me a telegram (at my expense) to say
    what train you start on. You must come to the Broad Street
    station—have your trunks checked there too, and don’t leave any
    of your things behind, for there is plenty of room to put all
    your things here, and you are not to go back to Nettie’s unless
    you go on a visit of pleasure.”

Aunt Hannah glanced up to see if the little room with its old ingrain
carpet and cheap furniture was still about her. She was almost
breathless with the proposal of the letter. Things seemed to whirl
around her. She wanted to get something to steady her before she read
on. She saw the black side of the sheet-iron drum and remembered the
afternoon, and a glance toward her open Bible showed her the lines “God
is faithful . . . will with the temptation also make a way to escape,
that ye may be able to bear it.” She drew a long breath and closed her
eyes for a minute’s lifting of her heart to God. He was going to make
the way to escape. She did not yet understand how it was to be done, but
her faith caught at the fact that it was to be done. Then she went back
to the letter.

    “You are to give your checks to the porter on the car—and you
    are to take a sleeper if you come at night, or a parlor car if
    you choose to come in the daytime. I enclose your ticket.”

Aunt Hannah noticed then that a small pink and white paper had fallen
from the letter when she opened it, and slipped to the floor. She
stooped and picked it up in a dazed way. Good for one trip to
Philadelphia it certainly was. This was something tangible and brought
her back to everyday life. She really was to go, for here was the
ticket. She went on with the letter eagerly now.

    “You are to have the porter carry your satchel into the station
    for you, and I will meet you at the gate and take you home. Yes,
    HOME, aunt Hannah, yours and mine, do you hear that? It isn’t
    very pretty, nor inviting yet, but it is ours for a while, for
    as long as we want it, and we shall fix it into a charming home.
    And now you want to know how it all happened and what it means.

    “Well, this morning I was sent for again to come to Rawley and
    Brown’s office on very important business, and as they told me
    it might keep me some time I asked for the day off at the store.
    I couldn’t have had that, if I had not done double duty for the
    last week in place of a girl who was sick. Mr. Dobson was very
    nice and said certainly in such a case he would give me
    permission. Of course, I suppose I’ll lose my pay for that day,
    but it had to be done, and it doesn’t matter now anyway. Well,
    Mr. Rawley hemmed and hawed a good deal, and finally told me
    that everything was satisfactorily settled at last and that I
    had been duly declared by the court to be uncle Abner’s heir,
    without any question or doubt anywhere, and that he wished to go
    over the papers with me and place the property in my hands.
    There was some red tape to be gone through with which I needn’t
    stop now to tell you about. It was all very interesting to me,
    the number of times I had to sign my name, and all the
    witnesses, and I felt just like a girl in a book, but I haven’t
    time for that. There is better to come. It seems uncle Abner had
    a farm where he lived after he got old, and his wife died and
    his son went to India, and there was a young farmer and his
    family who lived there and took care of him, and they have
    rented the house ever since. They still live there. The farm is
    pretty good, way up in New York somewhere I think, I didn’t pay
    much attention to it. Then he owned an interest in a coal mine
    near Scranton and a few government bonds, not many of those, but
    the whole is well invested and brings in a nice little income
    every year, sure, and I couldn’t help thinking of Jehoiachin
    when Mr. Rawley was telling me about it. He said it was so well
    invested that it was, as near as anything earthly could be,
    sure, a continual ‘income as long as I lived’ if I kept things
    in their present shape, for uncle Abner had been a very careful
    man and always invested in pretty safe things with what little
    he had. I didn’t tell him I considered it much instead of
    little, though. It seems a fortune to me. I suppose I shall
    learn better hereafter, but I am going to try to be very wise
    with it anyway, with God’s help.

    “Now you want to know how much it is, I know. Well, it amounts
    to about nine hundred dollars a year at the lowest calculation,
    besides several years of accumulated interest not invested yet.
    Isn’t that riches? Why, you’ve often told me that not many
    ministers and few missionaries get more than that. Now then, why
    shouldn’t you and I be missionaries? I know it has been your
    dear desire all your life, and I don’t know of anything that
    would be grander work. And as we can’t go as foreign
    missionaries just now, what if we should be home missionaries?
    Of course, two lone women couldn’t take mortar and bricks and
    build a church and preach, at least I shouldn’t like to try it,
    though I’m not at all sure but I could do it. You know we always
    thought, if we had the time and the material and the pattern,
    you and I could do almost anything anybody else could if we
    tried. Well, I began to think about a mission for us, and before
    I had gotten half-way home to write to you it came to me just
    what I would like to do. Why shouldn’t you and I make a real
    home mission for ourselves right here in the city of
    Philadelphia, by making a good home for a few people who have
    none of their own? It seems to me there is as much gospel
    sometimes in a good sweet loaf of bread such as you can make, as
    there is in—well—_some_ sermons. Don’t you think so? Then we
    could get a hold on the people who ate it, and get them to go to
    the churches, and try to help them in their everyday lives. Why,
    some of the young men here would stay at home evenings
    occasionally, perhaps regularly, if they had a pleasant, warm,
    light place to stay in. Instead of that they go out to the
    saloons, perhaps. Anyway, auntie dear, they don’t look rested in
    the morning when they come down to breakfast. And oh, what a
    breakfast we did have this morning! It seems as though I never
    can like hash again, though I always used to enjoy ours so much
    at home when you made it. But hash in Mrs. Morris’
    boarding-house is a very different dish indeed. When I got home
    I went straight up to Mrs. Morris’ room. She has not gotten
    entirely well from her severe sickness of a few weeks ago yet,
    though she goes around and directs things, but she seems to be
    so worried all the time. You know I told you how many bills she
    has unpaid and how hard times have been for her. You wouldn’t
    wonder a bit if you could be here and watch the way things go a
    little while. She was lying on her bed when I went in and
    looking as if she would like to cry, if she only were young
    enough and had the energy. She told me right away that she was
    in trouble again. She was a month behind in her rent, and the
    agent had been around and said it must be paid in advance after
    this and he couldn’t wait longer than till five o’clock. She
    only pays twenty-five dollars a month, and with all her boarders
    you might think she could pay it, but she doesn’t, that’s all.
    While she was talking I began to revolve my plans very rapidly.
    I didn’t want to act too rashly, for you know you always tell me
    that is one of my great faults, but I knew if I did anything it
    ought to be done very soon. Probably it would have been wiser to
    have asked Mr. Rawley’s advice, and perhaps some of my
    relatives, but I had an innate suspicion that I would not be
    allowed to do it at all, if I asked. And why shouldn’t I? The
    money is mine, and I am of age if I am not very experienced. I
    knew you would like it, at least I felt very sure you would, and
    if you and God like a thing I don’t care what all the rest of
    the world think. So I asked Mrs. Morris a lot of questions, some
    I had not asked her before. You see I had a whole two hundred
    dollars in my pocketbook, Mr. Rawley had given me. He said it
    was mine, and I might as well take it to begin on. So I took it.
    I knew I would want to do a lot of things right away, and that
    the first one would be to get you here at once, and to buy your
    ticket. I was just aching to spend some money, for it was the
    first time in my life I ever had much to spend. I asked Mrs.
    Morris about her butcher’s bill, and her grocery bill, and
    things and I found they were not so very big as she had made me
    think at first. Then I asked her point blank how she would like
    to let a woman come in here in her place for three months or so,
    and take the boarding-house off her hands, paying the bills for
    the present, and letting her pay them by and by, if she chose,
    or if not, holding the furniture as collateral. She didn’t know
    what I meant by collateral, but she soon understood, and said
    she would be only too glad, only she never could find any woman
    who would be so foolish. She said, too, that she was afraid if
    she once got away she would never be willing to come back, but
    just stay and leave the old furniture to make it right with her
    debts, and she sighed and returned to her trouble and began to
    cry. Then I couldn’t stand it any longer. I told her I thought I
    knew the right one for her, and I would write to her at once and
    attend to it all if she was sure she agreed to it. It did not
    take her long to decide what she would do after she was fully
    convinced that I meant what I said. She began to pack up her
    clothes right away and to talk about what she would take with
    her. She hasn’t much worth while, I guess. She will want those
    horrid crayon portraits of her family and herself, I hope, and a
    few other ornaments. But when we had gotten to this point, we
    found it was five o’clock, and the door bell made Mrs. Morris
    remember the rent agent. Sure enough, he had come, and Maggie
    came up to call Mrs. Morris. She looked at me blankly as much as
    to say: ‘What shall I do?’ She had forgotten all about him. I
    thought just a minute and then I told her I had some money,
    enough I thought to pay the agent and satisfy him, and I would
    go down and see if I could make him behave till we got things
    settled. Then I went downstairs and put on my most dignified
    air. He bristled at me and demanded Mrs. Morris.

    “‘Mrs. Morris is not well and is lying down,’ said I, ‘and I
    have come down in her place. Is there anything I can do for
    you?’

    “‘Well, I’ve got to see her if she _is_ lying down,’ he said in
    a loud voice, and he took a couple of steps toward the stairs as
    if he would go up to her at once. ‘She’s got to pay her rent.
    She’ll be put out if she don’t do it at once. This thing has
    gone——’

    “‘Oh,’ I said, ‘it isn’t in the least necessary for you to get
    excited, if that is all. I can attend to the rent as well as any
    thing else. Are you the agent?’

    “‘Yes, I _am_,’ he said, ‘and I won’t have any more talk either.
    I want my money.’

    “I had my pocketbook in my hand, and I tried to freeze him with
    a look as I opened it. When he saw me bring out a big roll of
    bills he almost looked faint, he was so astonished.

    “‘How much is it that is back?’ I asked.

    “‘Two months and a half,’ he snarled.

    “I began to count out the money, and then I remembered my own
    experience with Rawley and Brown and thought I would give him a
    little taste of it. I drew back and said ‘You are sure you are
    the agent and fully entitled to receive this money? Can you give
    me any credentials?’

    “He was very much taken aback, and got red and embarrassed and
    at last remembered that Mrs. Morris knew him. Then he grew angry
    again and demanded to see her. I sent a message up to Mrs.
    Morris that if she was able we would like to have her come down,
    and she came. When it was finally all settled and the receipt
    signed, I told the young man that he might tell the owner that
    the rent hereafter would be paid in advance and on time, and
    that there were a few repairs which needed immediate attention
    and we would like to have him call at his earliest convenience.
    He went away quite crestfallen, and I began to feel quite like a
    householder. The only thing that troubles me is Mrs. Morris’
    extreme gratitude, because, dear auntie, I’m afraid I haven’t
    loved her as much as I ought to for Christ’s sake, and I
    therefore can’t take to myself the credit she would give me. It
    is all very selfish in me.

    “Now the matter stands this way. If you possibly can come this
    week, do so. Mrs. Morris will be ready to leave on your arrival.
    She will go to her sister out West, and I doubt if she ever
    returns. I have given her some money to go with. It isn’t always
    you can buy a full fledged boarding-house, boarders and all so
    cheap. I suppose some one would call it dear, but I am very
    happy in my purchase. I shall keep my place in the store till
    you come anyway, for I don’t care to have the boarders find out
    my connection with the business, till they see some of the
    changes I want to have made for the better. The only servant
    here is worse than none. She is so dirty and saucy you never
    could stand her. If you possibly can induce Molly to come with
    you, bring her. I enclose a New York draft which I think will be
    all the money you will want to bring her, and pay any little
    bills till you get here. And now, dear auntie, I do hope and
    pray you will say yes, and come at once, and not find any
    ‘oughts and ought nots’ in the way, as you sometimes do. You see
    I have gone ahead and burned my bridges behind me, because I
    felt that you ‘ought’ whether you think so or not, for I mean to
    take care of you now myself and you are working too hard there.
    Here we will keep you in pink cotton and only let you direct. I
    shall keep good servants, and if I don’t always make the two
    ends meet why I shall have ‘a continual allowance’ given me of
    my King to draw upon.

             “Your loving, eager
                 “CELIA.”




                              CHAPTER IX.


There was a calmness and “upliftedness” about Miss Grant’s face as she
entered the dining-room that the people about that table did not
understand, and it rather angered them than otherwise. She walked
quietly to her accustomed chair and sat down. Nobody spoke, but she had
so far forgotten her afternoon’s troubles as to be oblivious of this.
Hiram was trying to think of the most sarcastic thing he could say, and
so failed to say anything, while Nettie in her various revulsions of
feeling did not know how to begin. Aunt Hannah herself opened the
conversation in the calmest, most self-contained tone possible, as if
the question she asked was one she often asked of her nephew.

“Hiram, can you tell me what time the through Philadelphia trains go?”

Hiram raised his cold, black eyes to her face in astonishment, a moment,
and stared at her as much as to say, “What possible concern of yours is
that?” and then dropped them to his plate again and went on eating.
After a suitable pause he said freezingly, “No.” Aunt Hannah tried
again.

“Isn’t there a time-table in the paper? Could you find out for me?”

“I don’t know,” said Hiram, this time without looking up. “I suppose if
it’s there you can find it as well as I can.”

“What in the world do you want with the time-table, aunt Hannah?” asked
Nettie, peevishly, with an undertone of anxiety in her voice. “There
isn’t anything the matter with Celia, is there? I presume she has lost
her place and is coming back on us. I always supposed that was the way
her venture would turn out. She ought to have tried to get a place in
the country for housework. It was all she was ever trained to do.
Anybody might know she couldn’t get on in the city.”

“Nothing is the matter with Celia, Nettie,” answered her aunt, “except
that she has written me to come to Philadelphia. She has found something
there for me to do, and I have decided that it will be best for me to go
at once. I shall have to start to-morrow, if possible, because I am
being waited for.”

“You go to Philadelphia!” exclaimed Nettie dropping her fork. “The
perfect idea! Has Celia gone crazy? Why aunt Hannah you couldn’t get
along in the city. Why, you—you—wouldn’t know how to get anywhere. You
don’t understand. Philadelphia is a large city and you couldn’t get
across the street alone. And what could you do? You are not going to
start in as a clerk in a store at your time of life, I hope. You would
break down at once, and then we should have you both to care for, for I
fully expect to have something happen to Celia soon, and then we should
have you both to care for, and you know aunt Hannah, willing as we are,
we are not able to do that.” Nettie paused for breath.

Then Hiram turned his little black eyes on her and asked contemptuously,
“And who is going to pay your fare on this pleasure excursion you are
going to take? You certainly can’t expect me to do it. I think I’ve done
all I’m called upon to do. I understood the bargain was that you were to
work for your board here.”

Hiram had never been so openly insolent before. If he had, Miss Grant
would have left long ago, even though she had been obliged to walk the
streets in search of work for her living. She turned her clear eyes upon
him full, and said quietly with the strength of the grace the Father
gave her from her communings with him:

“Yes, Hiram, that was the bargain, and I certainly have worked. I
consider that I have fully earned all that I have eaten, and the amount
of shelter that has been given me. As for any further assistance, I
think I have never yet asked it, and I hope I may never be obliged to do
so. Celia has sent me money and a ticket,—and I shall not be obliged to
ask any favors of any one.”

“Celia sent you money!” Nettie fairly screamed it. “Where in the world
did she get money?”

“Yes, where did Celia get money?” asked Hiram, sharply. “It seems to me
there’s something pretty shady about this business. Miss Celia’ll get
into serious trouble which will bring no credit to her family, if she
keeps on.”

Aunt Hannah rose from her untasted supper, drew herself up to her full
height and looked down upon Hiram Bartlett till he seemed to shrink
beneath her glance. There comes a time when a strong sweet nature like
Hannah Grant’s can be roused to such a pitch of righteous indignation
that it will tower above other smaller natures and make them cower and
cringe in their smallness and meanness. She had reached one of those
places in her life. Nettie, as she watched her, thought to herself that
aunt Hannah must have been almost handsome once when she was young.

“Hiram,” said aunt Hannah, and her voice was quite controlled and
steady, “don’t you ever dare to breathe such a thought as that again
about that pure-souled girl. You know in your inmost soul that what you
have said would be impossible. Some time, when you stand before God, you
will be ashamed of those words, as you will be ashamed of a good many of
your other words and actions.” That was all she said to him. She did not
lose her temper, nor say anything which she did not feel she ought to
say, or which she would have taken back afterward. Then she turned to
Nettie and quietly said:

“Celia has had a little estate left her from her father’s great uncle
Abner. She is now quite independent as regards money, and she wishes to
have me with her as soon as possible, and I intend to go to-morrow
evening, if I can get ready.”

She turned from the room then and went upstairs, but when she got there,
instead of going to work at packing, she turned the key in the lock and
knelt down by her bed, to pray first for Hiram, and second that God
might overrule anything that she had said amiss.

Meantime below stairs there was astonishment and confusion. Celia as a
poor shop girl, and Celia with money were two very different people.
Even Hiram felt that. He retired behind his paper till a suitable time
had elapsed for his wife to talk out her anger, astonishment, and
humiliation, and then he began to reflect that it would be a very
convenient thing to have the management of Celia’s money, even though it
was not much, for he was just beginning business for himself and every
little helped in the matter of capital.

“It would just serve you right, Hiram Bartlett, if Celia should turn out
to be rich,” said his wife, angrily. “The way you have treated her and
aunt Hannah ought to make you ashamed, but I don’t suppose it will. Now
what am I to do I should like to know? Three children, and one a fretful
baby, and all my housework to do all alone. If you had treated aunt
Hannah nicely, she would have stayed anyway. Maybe Celia would have come
here to live and taught the children. She is real good at teaching
little children anything. I remember she used to be so patient with the
boys at home. It would be awfully convenient to have somebody around
with money.”

In the course of the evening, while aunt Hannah swiftly gathered her
possessions in array preparatory to packing, Nettie knocked at her door.
She wanted to ask a great many questions, and she wanted to argue with
aunt Hannah and show her the inadvisability and impossibility of her
thinking of such a thing as going to Philadelphia to live with Celia,
when her plain duty was here with Nettie and her family. When she saw
she was making no headway, she tried to work on her aunt’s strong sense
of duty, and finally cried, and told her she never thought she would be
left by aunt Hannah in that way, with all those children and no help,
that she always knew aunt Hannah cared more for Celia than for any of
them, and that it was not fair when they had offered her a home and done
everything for her, and she had come there with the understanding that
she would stay several years anyway. It wasn’t fair to Hiram.

When she had talked this way for some time, her aunt turned to her
almost desperately. She did not want to say anything rash. But Nettie
must be shown how inconsistent she was.

“Nettie,” said she, just as calmly as she had talked to Hiram, “you know
that you and Hiram never wanted either me or Celia with you. You know
that you consider me in the way, and that I am only good to work. I
don’t say anything against that, for that may be true, but you know that
you grudge me my home here, and that you are giving out to your friends
that you are doing a great deal to care for me in my helpless old age,
and that I am a burden. You know yourself whether that is quite fair,
and whether I have not worked as hard as any woman could for my board
and lodging. But that is not to the point. You have a perfect right to
think so about me. It may be all true, and I cannot stop you in saying
such things to outsiders, but I have a right to say whether I will be
taken and disposed of as if I was a piece of goods, and cared for as if
I was a baby. I am not quite so infirm yet but that I can earn my living
where I shall be more welcome. I thank the Lord that a way has been
opened for me to go where I am wanted, but I must honestly tell you,
Nettie, that I should have gone just the same if I had not known that
you felt so, for I feel that my place is with Celia, if I can be with
her. She is alone in the world. You have your husband and your children.
She has nobody but me. I bear you no grudge, Nettie, and I think you
will be happier with me away.” Then she went on packing and Nettie
retreated to talk with her husband.

The result was a proposition that they should coax Celia to come home
and live with them, and Nettie said a few nice things which she hoped
would patch up aunt Hannah’s feelings, but aunt Hannah was firm, and
would not even delay to write to Celia. She went diligently on with her
preparations.

Gradually they settled down to the inevitable, and by the next noon had
so far calmed down as to be able to ask some questions about the more
definite details. Aunt Hannah had started out on an expedition very
early in the morning without telling them where she was going, or
without seeming to remember that there was breakfast to be gotten and
cleared away. She seemed to be living by faith. She certainly ate
nothing that morning. She visited a certain little house in a by-street
where lived an old servant, Molly by name, who had declined the most
earnest solicitations of Nettie to live with her at exceedingly small
pay, and preferred to earn her living by doing fine ironing. She also
visited the station, the telegraph office, the bank, and the
expressman’s office, and then went back to her packing again. Later in
the afternoon, she went out again and made a few calls, on the
minister’s wife and the doctor’s wife and a few very dear friends,
bidding them a quiet good-bye, for she wished to slip away without
making any more talk than was necessary. But it was at the dinner-table
that Celia’s whole plan was ferreted out by Nettie.

“Celia has bought a boarding-house!” exclaimed Nettie. “What an absurd
idea! What does she or you either know about keeping boarders? You’ll
both let them run right over you. You’ll get in debt the very first
week. Why, aunt Hannah, you have no right to encourage Celia in such a
scheme. She’s too young, anyway, to be away off there in a city without
a guardian. She ought to be here. Hiram could manage her money and make
it double itself in time, and if she really has as much as you say, she
has plenty to live quite comfortably without doing anything. You ought
to tell her so.”

But aunt Hannah did not seem to be intimidated by this. Nettie tried
again.

“And then think how plebeian it will be! It was bad enough to work in a
store, but a boarding-house keeper, and for one who has money of her
own. It is simply unheard-of. I shall be ashamed to death to have Mrs.
Morgan know about it. I think I have had trouble enough without having
to be ashamed of my family. Celia always did do queer things, anyway.
Don’t you think it is very impractical, Hiram?”

Nettie asked his opinion as if that would settle the matter for
everybody concerned, and he answered in the same manner.

“I certainly do think it is the most wild and impossible scheme I ever
heard of, and one which ought not to be permitted. It will be the ruin
of Celia’s property, and when that is all gone, and you and Celia are in
trouble, I suppose I shall be called upon to help you out. Of course I
shall do the best I can, but you must remember that I have not very much
money to throw away on wild childish schemes.” He spoke with the air of
a martyr, and aunt Hannah answered him cheerily. She had recovered her
spirits since she had sent her telegram.

“You needn’t worry, Hiram. I don’t believe either Celia or I will ever
be in need of your help. But if we are, I don’t think we shall trouble
you. You know they have a good many charitable institutions in the City
of Brotherly Love, and we shall surely be well cared for if the
improbable happens.” Then aunt Hannah placed her nicely prepared little
coals of fire in the hands of her two grand nephews and her grand niece,
and went smiling upstairs. The coals were tiny paper parcels each
containing a bright five dollar gold piece. She had lain awake last
night, worried about the sharp words she had felt obliged to speak, and
the sentence Nettie had flung out about her leaving her without help,
and she wanted to show that she bore no grudge for what they had said.
Celia had sent her the money to spend as she thought best, and aunt
Hannah knew her girl well enough to feel she would say this was a good
way to spend it. Besides, she felt sure she could run a boarding-house
successfully in a financial way, as well as some others, if she had the
chance, so she might by and by have more five dollar gold pieces to do
with as she chose. She was beginning to be very happy, as she packed and
strapped the last trunk, and smoothed her hair and tied on her grey
bonnet and grey veil. At the last Hiram and Nettie behaved quite well.
Those five dollar gold pieces had gone a long way toward making the
bereavement of aunt Hannah’s departure felt. Hiram took her satchel
down, and Nettie walked beside her carrying her umbrella and wheeling
the baby, while Johnnie and Lily trotted on ahead. There was an éclat
and importance attached to a sudden and first-class departure such as
aunt Hannah’s was turning out to be, which could not well be carelessly
neglected. They made an interesting procession down the street. More
than one neighbor looked out of her window, and a few knew that Miss
Hannah was going away. But they had said good-bye, and only turned their
heads the other way to wipe away a tear of regret, or sigh perhaps that
their good friend was not to be near any more with her cheery face and
her words of comfort. When it was observed by one or two that Molly
Poppleton had also passed down the street accompanied by an old colored
man wheeling her ancient trunk on a wheelbarrow, and carrying a
good-sized bundle, several of the good women came to their gates to look
down the street, and wait till Nettie returned to ask what it all meant.
And Nettie enjoyed a triumphal march back to her home. “Yes, she’s gone,
we shall miss her very much.” Her nose was red with being rubbed and her
eyes had a suspicious redness about them. “No, Celia isn’t ill, but she
couldn’t stand it any longer without aunt Hannah. You know Celia has had
a fortune left her? Oh yes, she’ll have plenty now. Yes, aunt Hannah has
to go and be her chaperon. I suppose she’ll quite come out in society
now she has money enough to do about as she pleases. Oh yes, she’s very
generous, she always was. She sent the children each handsome presents
in gold. Yes, aunt Hannah has taken old Molly for a maid. She’ll be
obliged to have a maid there, you know. Funny, isn’t it, that a woman
who knows how to work should need a maid? I shouldn’t like it myself,
but then one has to do as other people do.” Then Nettie went home and
got supper and washed up her dishes and put her three babies to bed, and
sat down wearily and wished for aunt Hannah.

But aunt Hannah sat serenely in the sleeper, waiting for her berth to be
made up, and thinking to herself that she also, like Jehoiachin, had had
her head lifted up out of prison.




                               CHAPTER X.


It was perhaps one of the happiest nights that aunt Hannah ever spent.
She lay down in her bed in the sleeper and slept like a little child for
a time, for she was as tired as a baby after her day and night of
excitement, but in the early dawn she awoke and lay there listening to
the regular cadence of the moving train. It was music to her. Her life
had for years been a monotonous one, and every detail of the journey was
a delight to her. The turning wheels seemed to sing a tune to her, “Now
hath mine head been lifted up above mine enemies round about me.” She
tried to turn that thought out of her mind as soon as she discovered its
significance, for she did not like to think that even in her heart had
hid a feeling that Hiram and Nettie were her enemies, but somehow the
rejoicing stayed anyway.

She began to look forward to the morning and the day that was to follow,
the opening of her new life. What would it hold of good or of ill for
her? Would there be trials? Yes, but there had been trials before. She
would have “his strength to bear them, with his might her feet could be
shod. She could find her resting-places in the promises of her God,” as
she had done before. And it was such delightful work before her, a
prospect of making over a home and making it pleasant. Aunt Hannah took
rest, too, in the thought of experienced Molly Poppleton now reposing in
the berth above her. She was going on a mission at last. How good God
had been to her! He had tried her for a little while, but he was
bringing her out into a large place. She could see that, even though she
could not know the trials that were before her. Of course there were
trials, she expected that, earth was full of them; but she did not need
to carry them; Christ had borne them all for her long ago. She would
trust and he would bring her safely through as he had done before and
was doing now. Then her thoughts dwelt in sweet reflection upon her
Saviour whom she loved so much, and she communed with him and promised
to try to help every person who came within that house that she was to
make pleasant for him and his children, and to try to live for him
before them every day. And that crowded, rushing car became a holy
place, because God met her there and blessed her.

The train reached the Broad Street station at a very early hour. Celia
was glad of that, for it gave her plenty of time to meet her aunt and go
with her back to the house, without being late at the store. She had not
had time to reflect yet as to whether she would give up her position.
She was hardly ready to do so. It seemed to her that perhaps she might
do more good if she retained it for the present, at least until she
found some one else who needed it, and to whom she could give it with
profit, both to that person and to her employers who had been very kind
to her. Besides, she wished not to appear before the boarders yet as an
active agent in the reforms of the house.

At exactly half-past five she arrived at the Broad Street station. It
was an early hour for her to be out alone, and it was still dark save
for the electric lights which glared everywhere as if trying to keep off
the day. But the train would come in at five minutes to six, and Celia
had been too eager and too happy to sleep longer, so she paced up and
down in the ladies’ room until the train was almost due, watching the
people come and go and wondering about them all as she was wont to do.
As the time drew near for the train she went out and stood behind the
gates watching the trains moving back and forth. She began to say to
herself, “Oh, what if she should not come? What if something has
happened to the train? Or what if Nettie and Hiram have persuaded her at
the last minute not to come? Or what if she missed her train? But no,
she would have telegraphed. ‘Charge not thyself,’—dear me! How much I
do that. I must stop worrying ahead about everything. Aunt Hannah must
have seen that fault in me very glaringly. I never realized how much I
do it.” And then the train whistled and rolled into the station, and the
passengers began to alight, and stream into the gates, looking sleepy
and cold. Celia stood there in the dim greyness of the cold, foggy
morning and began to tremble with the excitement and joy of watching for
aunt Hannah. Suddenly she saw the ample form of Molly Poppleton loom up
behind the gilt-buttoned porter and she caught a glimpse of a little
grey bonnet just behind and knew that aunt Hannah was come.

She took them home in the street-car, and then escorted them up to her
little third story back room. She had risen early and put it in order.
Molly looked around in disdain.

“Well, Miss Celia, you don’t have things as fine in the city as I
expected,” she said. “The idea of their putting you up in such a room as
this! Why, Miss Celia, it ain’t as good as the kitchen chamber at
Cloverdale. I always heard a city was a dreadful place to live, but I
never thought it was this bad. The wonder to me is anybody that don’t
have to, stays in ’em. But we’ll have it _clean_ pretty soon anyway,
don’t you worry.” And she stalked to the window and surveyed the narrow
court below, where she surmised she would be obliged to dry her clothes.
She sniffed to herself, but Celia could see her practical eye already
planning how she would change the position of the ash bucket and the
garbage pail. She gave a sigh of relief at the thought of Molly
Poppleton’s ability, and turned to aunt Hannah, fairly smothering her in
kisses. Then she put a hand on each soft, loved cheek, held her off at
arm’s length and looked into her face.

“Now, you dear, good auntie, tell me just what you think of me? Am I a
wild, impractical girl, full of crazy schemes? Tell me right away.”

“Well,” said aunt Hannah, a queer little twinkle in her eyes, “that’s
what Hiram thinks.”

“Oh, he does, does he? Well, I don’t really suppose it will matter much,
do you? But I mustn’t stop now to talk. I have to be at that store in an
hour, and it takes half of that to get there. We must talk business. Do
you think you can get along to-day by yourself, with Molly? That is, I
mean without my worthy advice and assistance? Of course I’ll be home at
half-past six, and I’ll give in my resignation there if you think best,
but I hardly like to do it quite so soon after Mrs. Green was so kind
about getting it for me. It doesn’t seem quite fair to the firm either
to stop now, after they have had all the trouble of teaching me. Mrs.
Morris is to leave on the noon train. She is ready, except that her
faith hasn’t been quite equal to believing that you were really coming
to take her place. She told the boarders this morning that she was going
away for her health, and that she had secured a woman to take her place
for a while. She guessed they would like it just as well. She wasn’t
sure when she should return. The German promptly gave notice that he
should leave, and I am glad of it. Some of the others said that if
things didn’t go better than they had been doing for a week they would
have to follow his example, but I think they will change their minds
when they see the difference. I amused myself going to market last
evening. I bought a great big roast, one of the finest cuts, and some
fine potatoes and apples and yeast and flour. I know Mrs. Morris’ flour
isn’t good, for she can’t make anything out of it fit to eat. I also got
some spinach and celery and sweet potatoes, canned tomatoes and a few
other things. I want to have a regular treat the first night regardless
of the cost. You can figure things down afterward, but I thought we’d
have enough for once to make up for the days of starvation. That Maggie,
down in the kitchen, is a slouch and a bear. She gets in a towering rage
whenever you go near her. I have not said anything about her, except to
ask what contract Mrs. Morris had with her. I find it is on a day to day
basis, so you can do as you please. If you and Molly want her, and can
get the right kind of help out of her, keep her. If not, get rid of her
and we’ll find a second girl who knows how to do things right. Now,
shall we go down and see Mrs. Morris? And are you sure you are equal to
all this, and not too tired to begin to-day? I suppose Mrs. Morris would
wait till you are rested, if you want her to.”

But aunt Hannah smiled and said no, she was eager to begin. Then she
took off her bonnet and smoothed her grey hair and went down.

Mrs. Morris had on the inevitable old calico wrapper. Celia wondered if
she meant to travel in it. Her hair had evidently not been combed that
morning, only twisted in a knot. She seemed embarrassed by aunt Hannah
in her trim grey traveling dress, and hardly knew on what footing to
meet her.

“For the land sake!” she exclaimed, wiping her hands, from custom
perhaps, on the side of her wrapper before shaking hands. “So you’ve
come! And you’re really willing to undertake it, and think you can
succeed? I’m afraid you’ll be disappointed. It’s a hard life! You look
too good for such a life. They’re an awful torment, boarders are! Me
heart has just been broke time an’ again with the troubles I’ve been
through with them. I’ll show you all around, and if you feel you can’t
do it, _yet_, I shouldn’t feel you was bound in any way to stick to your
bargain. Miss Murray she seemed to be so sure, but I wouldn’t want you
to be took at no disadvantage. You see I am afraid, if I get away, I
shan’t want to come back again, and I don’t want to go off and feel I
left you dissatisfied.”

They went down to breakfast soon, and Celia saw her aunt seated before
the uninviting meal. She felt sorry for her, and yet she thought she
would enjoy the meal with the prospect of the one she would give the
boarders later in the day. But she was scarcely prepared for the look of
horror that gradually overspread the good woman’s face, as she tasted
dish after dish and found them alike unpalatable. There was oatmeal that
morning. It was thick and lumpy, and only half cooked. Besides the salt
had been forgotten. There was pork and greasy fried potatoes, but they
were both cold, and unseasoned. The coffee was weak and muddy. Celia
swallowed a few bites. She felt that she could go hungry for one day.
Then she said a soft good-bye to aunt Hannah, squeezing her hand under
her napkin so the boarders would not see and slipped away.

Aunt Hannah finished all she cared to of her meal and went back to Mrs.
Morris. Molly Poppleton sat down to her breakfast in undisguised
disgust. Nothing but the prospect of the power that was to be hers held
her tongue from expressing her mind on the subject of good food decently
cooked. She did not even pretend to eat much, and she looked at the
slatternly form of Maggie as she lounged in to gather some plates, with
animosity in her eye. She spent most of her time in the dining-room
counting the fly specks and finger marks on the wall and windows. She
made up her mind that she would get time for those windows somehow
before dinner, if possible. If not, they should be done before another
dawn of light and breakfast anyway.

Meantime Mrs. Morris was showing aunt Hannah the house. This room
brought so much a week, and that one only so much, and so on, and at
each room she had a tale to tell of its various inmates during the years
she had kept a boarding-house. Aunt Hannah listened quietly, mentally
making notes of what she would and would not do. She saw, without
seeming to do so, the worn furniture, the need of a patch on a carpet,
or a turning of furniture to hide it, the need of a wardrobe, or bureau
in some cases. She set down in her mind the number of window shades
torn, or worn out or lacking, and thought how much some cheap muslin
curtains would improve things. She felt like a rich fairy, as she went
from room to room seeing its need, and knowing that she could wave a
wand and change it all. Sometimes the bareness or the attempt at
decoration by the boarder was pitiful. She paused a moment before a
picture of a quiet sweet-faced woman, in a dark velvet frame on Harry
Knowles’ bureau, and wondered who she was, and if the young man whom
Mrs. Morris said roomed there was worthy of a mother with such a face as
that. Then she went at Mrs. Morris’ request with her to her room and sat
there during an hour of conversation, in which Mrs. Morris, with many
sighs and tears, detailed her entire life and troubles for her benefit.
Aunt Hannah’s quiet, respectful attention and sympathy led her on until
she had unburdened all her heart. Then was the Christian woman’s
opportunity, and she spoke the word in season to the other woman, that
word which cannot fail to bear fruit in due time. Mrs. Morris, with her
empty life and joyless spirit, while she received the words with tears
and some gratitude, but gave no outward sign that they had more than
touched the surface of her life, yet remembered what had been said to
her, and as she sat in the train that afternoon, speeding far away from
the scene of her disappointments and disheartening, her fare paid by one
Christian, her house taken and managed by another whom she saw must be a
true saint, pondered all these things in her heart.

Mrs. Morris was gone, and aunt Hannah descended to the kitchen, bidding
the impatient Molly Poppleton wait until she called her.

Just before Mrs. Morris’ departure, she had informed the sullen-looking
Maggie that Miss Grant was the woman who was to take her place. Maggie
had responded with a significant look, which did not promise much for
taking the new mistress into her favor. She met Miss Grant in the middle
of the dining-room during her progress to the kitchen. Her hair was
frowsy, her dress soiled and torn, and her arms akimbo. Altogether she
would have furnished a formidable encounter to a woman who was not used
to managing servants and holding the reins of her household well in her
own hands.

“I just came to see what you wanted fer dinner,” she announced. “There’s
some things come from a new place where we never deal. I thought I’d let
you know.”

Aunt Hannah thought a minute. Then she said:

“Yes, Maggie, I’ll be out in the kitchen soon to attend to dinner, but
meantime it is only one o’clock and there is time enough to get this
room in order first. I think you would better wash those windows.”

Maggie stood aghast.

“And what’s the matter with this room, I’d like to know?” she said in a
loud, belligerent tone. “It’s just the same as it always is, and what’s
good enough fer Mis’ Morris ought to be good enough fer you. Indeed I’ll
wash no windows to-day. I’ve got me afternoon’s work all planned out.
This room’ll be swep’ when I sets the table fer dinner, an’ that’s all
it’ll get to-day. And you needn’t trouble your self about comin’ in the
kitchen. I never likes to have the missus in the kitchen, it flusters
me. I know me business and I ’tend to it, and I likes to have them as I
live with attend to theirs. If you’ve got any orders, give ’em, and I’ll
get dinner on time, you needn’t worry about that.”

Maggie had backed up against the kitchen door, her arms still akimbo,
and stood as if to defend the fortress of her dominion.

Aunt Hannah waited till she had drawn down a crooked shade and rolled it
straight again, pinning the torn edge, before she answered. Then she
turned and calmly faced the irate Maggie.

“I always manage my own kitchen, Maggie,” she said, in a quiet voice,
“and I intend to do so still. I want this dining-room put in order
first, before anything else is attended to. Get some cloths and hot
water right away, please.”

There was a dignity about aunt Hannah that was new in Maggie’s
experience. She had been accustomed to intimidate Mrs. Morris by such
conversation as she had just used, and she supposed she could do the
same by her new mistress. She never expected to have it treated with
such calm indifference. She was forced to her last resort.

“I can’t stay in a house where things are managed that way. No lady goes
into the kitchen. I know me business, and I don’t like to be interfered
with. If you ain’t suited with me doing as I think best, I can find
plenty of places.”

“Oh, certainly, if you prefer,” said aunt Hannah, pulling down the other
shade and fixing it neatly.

“Well, if I do, I’ll go right away, and then what’ll you do?” burst out
the astonished Maggie. “There’s all them boarders got to have their
dinner. You can’t fool with boarders, you know. They’ll all leave you.”

“I shall do very well,” answered aunt Hannah. “I brought one of my home
servants with me, and I can get others very easily. If you choose to
stay and do as I say I would like to have those windows washed at once,
otherwise you may go.”

Poor Maggie! She was crestfallen. This was new treatment. The mistresses
she was used to had to cater to the desires of their servants. She did a
great deal of work, and she preferred to do it her way. But aunt Hannah
was firm. Molly at that moment, too impatient to begin to be able to
wait any longer, put her head in at the door and asked if Miss Hannah
was ready for her. She eyed the crestfallen Maggie with the superiority
of a conqueror. That was enough. Maggie tossed her head and declared she
would not do another stroke of work in that house, and demanded back
pay. Miss Hannah settled up with her, and she departed, leaving Molly
monarch of the kitchen and scornfully surveying her new realm.




                              CHAPTER XI.


“It’s just a pigpen! That’s what it is!” declared Molly Poppleton,
holding up her ample calico skirts and clean gingham apron in a gingerly
way. “I don’t know where to begin. I didn’t suppose a human being
_could_ be so dirty!” Then she plunged into work. The range got such a
cleaning as it had not had in years. The ashes were cleaned out, and the
soot removed from all its little doors and traps and openings. Molly was
not used to a city range with all its numerous appliances, but she had
very keen common sense and she used it. She knew dirt and ashes could
not help a fire to burn, so she removed them. While she was about it,
she gave it a good washing inside and out, for she found the oven
encrusted with burned sugar and juice of some sort, and the top was
covered with grease. Then, in the most scientific manner, she started a
fire, and before very long it was glowing, and the water in the old tank
was steaming hot.

It appeared there really was no time for those dining-room windows that
day, after all. With skirts tucked together and sleeves rolled high
Molly generously used the hot water and soap in the kitchen. She
unceremoniously took the old ragged cloths which must have been Maggie’s
wiping towels for scrubbing rags, trusting to Miss Hannah’s sense of the
fitness of things to provide others in some way. The kitchen table and
shelves and windows and paint and sink were scrubbed, and even the
floor, and then Molly stood back and surveyed the room now pervaded with
a damp atmosphere redolent of soap.

“There! I guess it’ll do fer over night, and the fust chance I get I’ll
give it a good cleaning. I never saw the like in my life! How them poor
boarders stood it eating out of a dirty hole like this I don’t see. Now,
what’s to do? That sink was a caution! The water and dust was all in a
mess underneath and the top was slimy! I wonder what that creature that
called herself Maggie thought she was made for.”

Meanwhile Miss Hannah had gone to her trunk and arrayed herself in an
old grey gingham and a dark apron that enveloped her completely. She had
discovered that they must begin at the very foundation before they could
hope to do anything toward getting dinner. She investigated Celia’s
stores and found they were ample for present needs. Celia’s training had
not been for nothing. She knew by intuition that her aunt and Molly
would enquire for soap and yeast and baking powder among the first
things. She had thought of the little things that might not be in stock
in Mrs. Morris’ kitchen and had a supply for the present. The stores in
the pantry were not very full. There was a plate with a pile of sour
white-looking pancakes, another with some lumpy oatmeal, a few boiled
potatoes, a bowl of watery soup and two or three ends of baker’s loaves.
Miss Hannah applied her nose to one of these and then laid it down again
and said, “Bah!”

After looking at the array a few minutes, she gathered them all into a
pan and dumped them into the garbage pail. A heavy, lifeless pie on a
higher shelf also met the same fate. Then she got the dish pan and some
clean hot water and washed a few dishes for her immediate use. Having
done this she prepared to set some bread. It was late in the day, but it
would not take long, and it could rise while she was doing other things
and be baked after the dinner was cooked. Then she could hurry up part
of it by making it into pulled rolls so that they could be used for
dinner. The bread done she started on a searching expedition for bread
cloths and clean rags. She could not work without tools. In one of her
trunks was a roll of old rags and linen; with Molly’s help she
unstrapped the trunk and searched it out. It was a great satisfaction to
have that bread covered with a clean cloth and feel that so much of her
work was going on right. She decided that the dishes must all be washed.
She and Molly both worked at this, Molly washing off the shelves while
she wiped the dishes. By that time it was four o’clock.

“It’s high time we was seeing about the dinner,” said Molly, as she
thumped the last pile of plates upon the clean shelf. “What are you
going to do for a tablecloth? That one in there ain’t fit, an’ there
ain’t a clean one about the drawer anywhere. There’s a pile of dirty
ones behind the door in the back stairway. I reckon I’ll have to wash
one. As for napkins I should suppose they didn’t use ’em. I can’t find
any.”

Miss Hannah went on another hunt, and discovered more soiled tablecloths
and a stack of soiled napkins. There was nothing for it but to wash
some. Molly already had the washtub going and was working as if her life
depended upon it. Well for Miss Hannah’s plans and Celia’s hopes that
Molly was equal to emergencies, nay delighted in them, and that she was
a swift worker. By the time Miss Hannah had the tablecloth and dishes
off the table and the dining-room swept and dusted that linen was
swinging in a brisk breeze in the back yard and the irons were growing
hot on the range.

“Five o’clock and the table not set yet!” commented Molly. She was
working on time and the pleasure of the race depended upon her getting
done before Miss Celia should arrive, and being able to ring that dinner
bell exactly on time. “Well, I reckon we’ll get through somehow. You
can’t turn a pigpen into a parlor in one day, you know. I declare, Miss
Hannah, it was a pity to turn that girl loose on the community. We ought
to have kept her by main force and taught her how to scrub, before we
let her go. The things that wasn’t too filthy dirty to be burned or
rusted is burned and rusted, and the things that had anything about them
to get lost and broken has got that the matter with them. I reckon we’ll
have a few things to buy ’fore we get fixed out for comfort.”

But Molly was working swiftly all the while she talked. She had filled
the little salts and peppers, and rubbed up the knives. The careful
Celia had not forgotten bath brick nor silver polish, though there was
very little that had any pretension to silver to clean. The dishes and
table appointments were of the plainest. Many would have said it was
impossible to make any difference in that table without spending a lot
of money. Miss Hannah did not think so. She knew the subtle difference
between order and disorder, and the startling contrast between
cleanliness and dirt. Cleanliness was next to godliness and she was
practicing that to-day. The godliness she hoped would follow hard after.
While she pulled the little cushions of responsive velvety dough for the
rolls, she prayed a rich blessing on that first meal in the house under
her care. Then she let her mind wander for a moment to the home she had
left which had been no more of a home to her than this was yet to its
inmates. She wondered how they were getting on, and if the baby was
well. The only drawback to the joy of leaving Nettie’s had been the
baby. Aunt Hannah could not help loving babies, and enjoying the
clinging of their soft dimpling arms about her neck and their apple
blossom breath upon her cheek. The babies always loved aunt Hannah. It
was only after they grew older and began to imitate the grown-up people
that they began to be saucy, impertinent, and unloving. Even then,
Johnnie and Lily had always come to aunt Hannah with a burn or a bump to
be comforted, for somehow her motherly arms knew just how best to gather
in the troubled little one and comfort it. But aunt Hannah had no time
to think of duties past, and troubles. She gave the last little jerk to
the puffy roll and tucked it in the pan to rise for the last time, and
then hastened in to set that table. Molly had laid the crisp tablecloth
which she had literally forced to dry quickly with her hot irons, on the
table and was ironing away for dear life at the napkins. Molly and aunt
Hannah had high ideals, brought from comfortable private homes, and they
wished this house they had come to take care of to be a home in the best
sense of the word. They worked faster now, for the clock was warning
them that it was getting late. The roast beef well seared in the most
scientific way was roasting away in the oven with a good supply of sweet
and Irish potatoes on the grate below, grouped about a huge baked apple
dumpling which Molly had hastily concocted, and Molly was straining the
spinach and subjecting it to a rubbing through the colander, after which
it went back on the stove to keep hot before its butter and last
peppering were applied. She looked doubtfully at the water the spinach
was cooked in and then with a daring glance at the clock rushed about to
carry out another resolution, calling to Miss Hannah:

“You ken put on the soup plates ef your a mine to. I’ve found I can make
a taste of spinach soup with the water and some milk and flour and
butter. It’ll make things seem nicer I guess for the first night, and
don’t take a minute. That’ll give the rolls time to get a little browner
before they’re needed, you know.” Then she began to sing at the top of
her voice:

                  “Am I a soldier of the cross,—”

Molly Poppleton always sang at the top of her lungs when she had some
important work to do or was in an unusual hurry with her work. It made
her very happy to have a good deal of work, and hard work at that.

Celia, opening the front door with her latchkey just then, heard the
singing and rejoiced. There was the old Molly. She had not become
discouraged and gone home, but was at work with heart and voice as in
their old kitchen at home. She ran out into the dining-room to see how
things were getting on before she went upstairs. But she stopped in the
doorway astounded. Even her highest hopes had not realized the change
there would be. What made it? Was it the shining tablecloth, or the
glistening glasses, or the knives and forks laid straight, or what? A
nice square cake of butter was in each butter-plate at the ends of the
table. The salts were smoothed off and stamped with the bottom of the
salt-cellars. The plates were in a pile at one end of the table instead
of being upside down on the napkins at each place. Where were the plates
of crackers and gingersnaps which had not failed to appear at every
dinner since she had been boarding there? Where was the inevitable dish
of prunes? Gone, and in its place a dish of translucent cranberry jelly
which Molly had found time somehow to fix. It was all very wonderful.
Even the gas had a clean globe on it. Celia wondered that so much had
been accomplished in one short afternoon. She heard the door being
opened from the outside and hurried into the kitchen, closing the
dining-room door behind her first. This must burst upon them all at once
when they entered the dining-room.

Aunt Hannah was taking the brown balls from the roll pan and piling them
on a plate, when she went into the kitchen, and she greeted her with:

“Celia, go upstairs and wash your hands and then come down and fix the
celery. Molly and I haven’t a second to do it, and it is time to ring
that bell in five minutes. Have the boarders come yet?”

Celia rushed away and was soon back, bearing aunt Hannah’s white apron
and a brush to smooth her hair that she might not be delayed from coming
to dinner on account of her appearance, and at last the dinner was ready
and it was time to ring the bell. She put the two glasses of celery on
the table, and handing Molly the bell went into the parlor. She did not
wish anybody yet to know she had a right in the kitchen. She was just
the ribbon girl from Dobson and Co.’s. There were things she wanted to
accomplish first which could better be done that way, she thought.

The bell rang and the boarders trooped down. The little old lady from
upstairs was first and interrupted the advance of the others, for a
moment. She walked into the dining-room followed by Miss Burns. Both
stopped blinking in the doorway and staring around, before they slowly
walked in a dazed way to their respective places. The two girls from the
three-cent store became embarrassed, and stood back awkwardly against
the wall staring undisguisedly. The three young men came after, Harry
Knowles ahead.

He drew a long whistle, and turning on his heel, started back into the
hall again. “Whew! this is great!” he said as he went. “I’m going to
wash my hands and comb my hair. I don’t fit in there.”

Aunt Hannah with her grey hair and placid face and grey dress with its
white apron presided well over that table. The dishes might be thick and
the tablecloth coarse, but no dinner on any rich man’s table was ever
cooked or served better, nor more thoroughly enjoyed. After they were
seated Miss Burns began with her nervous little giggle:

“Oh really, now, this is simply,—simply—simply _fine_, don’t you know.
This is quite a change, isn’t it, dear?” and she looked across the table
at Celia who was passing celery and handing soup plates as aunt Hannah
ladled out the pale green tempting soup. Her guests ate of it in wonder.
They were not acquainted with pureè of spinach. They wondered how it got
colored, and what it was anyway, and the most of them ate every drop in
their plates, some of them tilting the plates to accomplish it. The
three-cent store girls and the university student asked for more and got
it, and then Molly, her sleeves rolled decorously down and a white apron
over her dark one, took out the soup and brought in the platter with
that great brown perfectly cooked roast, and brought potatoes and
spinach and hot plates, while aunt Hannah with experienced hand and keen
knife, sharpened by herself, cut great juicy pink slices in generous
plenty and filled the plates.

They were a rather silent table that first night. They were embarrassed
to a degree by their surroundings which were so familiar and yet so
unfamiliar. And then the dinner was absorbing. It absorbed their
thoughts and they absorbed it.

When it came time for the dessert they sat back satisfied, and feeling
that perhaps it were as well that the inevitable pie, which they always
had for dessert, did not come to spoil this ideal repast. But they
forgot such feelings when that great pudding was brought in, its crust
browned to a nicety on the top, and light as feathers when it was cut,
its luscious quarters of amber apples in the bottom, and a dressing of
some sweet transparent syrup with just a dash of cinnamon.

“I tell you what!” said Harry Knowles, leaning back in his chair to fold
his napkin and talking in an aside to Celia, “that was the best dinner I
have tasted since I left home. I feel as if I had been invited out,
don’t you? I don’t know what it means, do you? She certainly can’t keep
it up. I suppose she’s just standing treat for the first night, but I
declare, if I could have meals like that, I’m not sure but I might be a
different kind of a fellow and amount to something. How’s our lamp
getting on? I thought of a way to fix the spring in that sofa the other
night. I believe I’ll stay in and try it to-night.”

Aunt Hannah, as they were leaving the table, apologized for not having
put the rooms in order that day. She had only been in power, she said,
since one o’clock, and there had not been time to do everything. She
hoped to have things in better shape very soon if they would all be
patient. Then the boarders went into the parlor to whisper with one
another about that good dinner, and Celia slipped unseen out to the
kitchen to exult and to help.




                              CHAPTER XII.


Out in the street, not far from that boarding-house, two young men met.
“How are you, Horace? Glad to see you, old fellow! You look as thin as a
rail. What do they feed you on down in that miserable hole where you
hide yourself? I say, Horace, you ought to have either a new
boarding-place or a wife.”

The other man laughed. “I’m hunting one,” he said, “that is, a new
boarding-house, not a wife.”

“Well, you may find the one while in search of the other, you know. They
always used to say, when we were children, that if you lost a thing you
never could find it till you lost something else and went to hunting
that. Now you haven’t exactly lost a wife, you know, because you never
had one. So that’s just as bad, but maybe you’ll find her. However, I
fear that any one you’d find in hunting a boarding-house wouldn’t be
worth her salt. That’s my experience. Say, old fellow, why don’t you
come up our way and live? It isn’t much further, and you are a good
walker. You could walk to that blessed church of yours, if you still
hold to your puritanical ideas about not riding on the trolley on
Sunday. Now there’s the place Royce boards; that would be first-rate,
and I happen to know there’s a vacant room there now, second story
front, fine sunny room, all conveniences and splendid board.”

“But I can’t afford second story fronts, Roger; my salary has mostly to
be paid by myself yet. You know we are building and the church is just
struggling to live. It is all made up of poor people.”

“Well, what in the world did you go down there for? You might have had a
church in Germantown if you would have taken it, and you also had a
chance out in West Philadelphia I heard. Why, you’ve friends enough to
have got you hearings in several big churches down in the heart of the
city where they pay big salaries. I’m sure I don’t see any virtue in
your hiding your light under a bushel. For my part, I think you are as
good, if not better, than any preacher I’ve heard in the city, if you
only would consent to let go of a few high and impossible views you have
about social equality. However, I suppose that’s neither here nor there.
You’re here and the churches are there, and so it will continue to be, I
presume, in spite of all I can say, and there’ll be nothing for me but
to tend you in your last sickness and pay the funeral expenses, if you
go on at this rate. I must see what I can do about getting our church to
help that mission of yours, if you persist in your folly.”

“I wish you would, Roger, for they need help, and a church in this
neighborhood is much more needed than in the quarters you have
mentioned, where there is a church of some sort every two blocks almost.
But I must go on, for I have a meeting this evening, and I want to go to
one more place before I go to church.”

They parted, the young man Roger wishing the other would reconsider, and
come higher up in town to board, and thus be near his friends. Then
Horace Stafford went on his way, and having consulted a list of
addresses in his notebook, in a moment more paused at a door and rang a
bell and the door was opened by Celia.

Now Celia was very happy over the successful dinner. She had lingered
about the halls catching words that the boarders had dropped, and she
knew that they were intensely pleased and surprised. When she was happy
or excited a clear red color came into her cheeks and a brightness into
her deep, grey-blue eyes which made her very beautiful. She was not
always beautiful, although she was always pleasant to look at: certain
conditions, however, had the power of making this charm bloom into
beauty. To-night the color and the shine were there, and she seemed a
charming picture to the young man who had spent the afternoon in calling
at boarding-houses, and had begun to know just what to expect to see
when the door opened. He was agreeably surprised, therefore, as he
stepped into the hall and waited while Celia called aunt Hannah, for he
had said he wanted to see Mrs. Morris, having been directed there for
board. He glanced into the parlor and sighed. It was the same grade of
parlor he had grown to expect, a dreary enough place, but he did not
know what was the matter with it, and as he should have to spend very
little time in it, it did not make great difference. He heard a low
cultured voice upstairs saying: “Tell Molly I will send her some in a
moment,” and then Miss Grant appeared before him.

It is true she did not know much about taking new boarders, but she did
the best she could. She told him there was one room left vacant that
day, that it was not in order yet, but if he cared to see it, he might
come upstairs and do so. He followed her to the room. It happened to be
the second story front. It was not large, for economy of space had been
exercised to a great degree in the building of that house, but it had a
sunny exposure, and the young man knew by an uncomfortable experience in
a dark room that that was a great advantage in a room. The bed did not
look very soft nor inviting, and the two chairs in the room were rather
dilapidated. The bureau was a cheap one with a rheumatic castor, which
gave it a reeling appearance. The bed clothing was tumbled in a heap on
the bed, as the German had left it. Altogether it was not just what one
would call luxury. But it was so much better than some the weary man had
seen that he ventured to ask timidly, “Could I have some sort of a table
to write on?”

Miss Hannah thought a moment and told him that she thought he could. He
asked the price and it proved to be not much more than he was now
paying. After a little reflection he said he would take it. Afterward,
when he had gone downstairs to the parlor to wait for the supper which
she had said he might have, in response to his question if it was too
late for the evening meal, he wondered why he had done so. What power
had been upon him upstairs to make him determine to cast his lot in
here? It was not that room, even though it was a second story front, for
that was very forlorn in the dim flickering gaslight, with the disorder
of the German upon it. It was not the general look of the house, for
that certainly was not attractive. And now as he sat in the dimness of
the shadow of the front window, and watched some of the boarders at the
further end of the room, he felt that same sense of desolation steal
over him which he had felt in so many boarding-houses that afternoon. He
could not hope to find many congenial spirits here. He sighed. It was
hard not to have some pleasant friends about one who could talk of the
things one knew and loved, when one came in at night after a hard day’s
work. But as Miss Hannah came back through the hall and in that quiet
sweet voice of hers that made one feel as if a benediction had been
pronounced upon one, told him that he could come to the dining-room now,
he followed her and knew that it was his landlady who had drawn him to
select this as his temporary home. She seated him and poured his coffee,
and then excused herself and left him. He looked about him after he was
left alone, and had bowed his head a moment, more in supplication that
the Lord would give him rest and strength for his work, than in
thankfulness for his food, for he had learned that there were kinds of
food which were as hard to eat as they were to digest. With pleased
surprise he saw the tablecloth was clean and free from crumbs. The plate
before him held food as appetizing as any he could remember in
pleasanter homes than those he had occupied lately. Of course the
potatoes had been heated over and were not so nice as when first served,
but the meat was tender and juicy, and he ate it with a relish, for he
was weary and had not had anything to really tempt his appetite for six
weeks, that being the length of time since he had gone to his friend
Roger’s, to dinner. Those delicious rolls and that coffee were enough in
themselves to satisfy a hungry man, and he began to feel that he had not
chosen his home amiss. Then the kitchen door opened, and Celia entered
bringing a bounteous plate of apple dumpling covered with plenty of
sauce. She put it down beside his place and began to remove the empty
dishes, asking him if he would have anything more.

[Illustration: “_I have had plenty and it has been so good._”]

“Thank you,” he said, looking up and smiling, “I have had plenty and it
has been so good. I have been boarding where they had miserable fare,
and I did not know how hungry I was. This meal has tasted like my
mother’s cooking.”

Celia’s eyes danced as she said demurely she was very glad. As she went
back to the kitchen with the dishes, she could not help thinking what
handsome eyes that man had, and how they were lit up by his smile. He
was tall and thin with an intellectual face which many persons would
have called homely, but of the style which Celia always designated to
herself and aunt Hannah as “homely handsome.”

The new boarder went out after his meal was finished. He had told his
landlady that he would bring his belongings when he returned later in
the evening, and she had promised to have his room ready for him.

Celia went upstairs to see if she could do anything. She was bubbling
over with delight over the house and its inmates and all she wished to
do. No child in a fairy tale ever had such delightful possibilities put
into her hands, she thought, as had been given to her.

“Now,” said aunt Hannah, “that room must be fixed for that man, for he
will come back by and by, and what shall we do with it to make it more
habitable? Poor fellow! He must have been hard put to it indeed for
shelter to have taken it looking like that, or perhaps he doesn’t know
any better. But it did look so desolate I couldn’t bear to take him to
it.”

“Yes, he does know better, aunt Hannah,” said Celia, laughing. “I know
he does. He has a mother—and,” she added half ashamed, “he has a
smile.”

“Well, I’m glad he has that,” said Miss Hannah, pulling the bedclothes
off in a gingerly way and extracting the German’s sheets and
pillow-cases from the mass. “He’ll need it to keep cheerful in this room
to-night, I think. Celia, I do wish I could get into my grandmother’s
linen and blanket closet for a little while to-night. I should like to
burn this quilt.” She held it out by her finger and thumb and examined
it carefully.

“Burn it, then,” said Celia solemnly. “Haven’t we got an allowance?
We’ll buy another.” Then she went to work to try and make that room less
dreary.

When the bed was made up with the cleanest things aunt Hannah could
find, the wash bowl and pitcher and soap dish immaculate, and two copies
of those flaring chromos called “Wide Awake” and “Fast Asleep” framed in
varnished coffee berries had been removed from the walls, there was not
much more to do. It was too late to do more at the paint than to wipe it
off with a damp cloth, and the floor needed only brushing up. Aunt
Hannah found a kitchen table in Mrs. Morris’ room which had done duty
for a dressing-table. She had Molly carry this upstairs for a
writing-table, and sighed that there was no cover for it. Celia
meditated a moment, and then went up to her own back-room and took the
embroidered denim cover from her trunk which she had made for a
Christmas present for aunt Hannah and brought it. It was a little
sacrifice but the table needed it. It wasn’t too fine for use, and it
would cause the bare room to look more habitable.

“There, aunt Hannah,” she said, “I made it for you, but you may do what
you like with it.”

Then aunt Hannah took Celia’s face between her hands and kissed her and
said, “My dear girl!” and put the pretty cover on the table.

“I don’t know as I should have done that,” meditated Celia later, “if it
hadn’t been for that smile and his speaking about his mother.”

She looked around the room once more as she was about to leave it. Aunt
Hannah had gone down to the kitchen to help Molly prepare for breakfast.
Her eyes fell upon the two rickety chairs. She thought of Harry Knowles.
A moment’s reflection, and she ran down to the parlor and beckoned him
to come into the hall.

“Harry,” said she, (they had already gotten well enough acquainted so
that she could call him by his first name; she exercised that
prerogative which a girl a little older than a young man likes to use
and which the young man seems to be proud to have exercised sometimes.
It was a pleasant brotherly and sisterly way to treat one another), “did
you know there was a new boarder? I was passing the room just now. It
looked awfully dreary before it was fixed up. The worst thing is the
chairs. I wonder if you couldn’t bring up your hammer and fix them a
little. It seems too bad for a new boarder to find things all run down
on the first night he comes.”

“All right, I’m with you, Miss Murray,” said Harry, interested at once.
“I know how it feels myself. Besides that good dinner has given me a
longing to do something for somebody else.”

They went upstairs to the chairs, and as they went Harry said in a
confiding tone, “Say, Miss Murray, I believe that Miss Grant is going to
be great, don’t you? She seems kind of like a woman who knew how, don’t
you know? Sometimes she makes me think of my mother just a little.”

Celia smiled and said she thought so, and they went to work.

It was after the room was all in order, and some delicious cakes set
rising in the yellow bowl downstairs for the morning breakfast, set with
buckwheat that smelled of the waving fields it came from. The lights
were out and everything quiet and Celia, lying awake to think over all
that had happened, suddenly became aware that her aunt Hannah was awake
also. Upon questioning her she at last ferreted out the reason for her
wakefulness.

“Well, you see, Celia, I suppose I’m rather tired to-night, though I
don’t feel it one bit, I’ve been so interested in it all. But somehow
I’ve just begun to think that maybe I ought not to have let you
undertake this scheme. It is all very nice and benevolent, but what if
it shouldn’t succeed? If it should run behind and take a good deal of
your money and you have to work hard for your living again, I should
never get over blaming myself. Then too, I’m a little worried about that
new man. I don’t know as I ought to have taken him into the house
without knowing the first thing about him, and I’ve always heard a city
was an awful place to get taken in. He may be a robber, or some dreadful
kind of a man, though to be sure he didn’t look it. I must confess that
I liked his looks very much, but you know, Celia dear, Satan sometimes
appears as an angel of light. I have heard that gamblers are often
mistaken for ministers. I know perfectly well that I am ‘green,’ as the
boys used to say, and perhaps I have been deceived. He was very late
getting in and he looked pale. It may be he is dissipated, though I
cannot really think that.”

“Now, auntie dear,” laughed Celia, putting her arms about her, “that
isn’t a bit like you. You must be over-tired or you never would talk
like that. Just remember your own words to me ‘Charge not thyself with
the weight of a year’ and ‘Bend not thine arm for to-morrow’s load. Thou
mayst leave that to thy gracious Lord.’ Don’t you fret one bit. What if
he is a gambler or a robber? He can’t do us any harm. We’ve nothing to
gamble and nothing to rob. Perhaps we’ll do him some good, and anyway I
don’t believe he’s anything but good—he talked to me—that is he said
he had a mother and she cooked like that, and then he smiled.”

Then they both laughed and Miss Hannah kissed her niece and thanked her
for the reminder that she need not bear burdens. After that they fell
asleep.




                             CHAPTER XIII.


The minister was very weary when he went up to his new room that night,
and he put down his satchel and looked around him hoping the bed would
be more inviting than when last he saw it, though he had grown
accustomed to sleeping soundly on any bed no matter how hard or uneven.
He drew a long sigh of relief. It looked clean anyway. He turned down
the covering and smoothed the sheets. They had no appearance of having
been slept in before. He drew another sigh. That was one fear off his
mind. He noticed next the table with its pretty cover. He was not
accustomed to fancy work. He did not know whether this was done by hand
or machinery. He only knew that it was a touch of beauty in his dreary
room and he felt gladdened by it. He went over to the table and
awkwardly felt of the material, passed his hand over the embroidery and
smiled. He said to himself he would write to his mother about it and she
would be pleased. Then he knelt down beside the table and bowed his head
in prayer upon it asking that he might receive and give a blessing in
that house where he had come to take up his abode, and that if possible,
it might be such a place that he would feel it was right and best that
he should remain for a time.

About that same time Harry Knowles stood before the bureau in his room
and looked at his mother’s picture. His face was grave and sad. He
looked into the pictured eyes with a questioning longing as if he would
have her with him again that he might ask her advice. He looked into her
face till the tears started in his own eyes. He let them drop unheeded
on the bureau and on the little velvet frame. She seemed to him to be
looking into his life, and asking him what he had done with his time
since she left him. At last he turned away his head and said aloud,
“Well, I’m glad I didn’t go to-night anyway. I s’pose the boys’ll give
me no end of chaff about backing out, but I’ve proved to myself that I
can stay at home _once_ when I say so. I wish mother _was_ here. I’d
tell her all about it, I believe, and promise her to start over again. I
wonder if ’twould be any use! If a fellow only had some one to help
him!” and he sighed and went to bed.

It is not quite certain what time Molly Poppleton arose the next
morning. Celia told her if she had only gotten up a very little earlier,
she might have met herself going to bed. The range unused to such
treatment brightened up early too, and was soon baking and boiling away
to please the most fastidious cook. The oatmeal had been cooking slowly
all night, and was getting ready to be a delicious porridge, such as is
found in its perfection only in the land of Scotland. Molly had coaxed
the milk by all the arts she knew, till it actually gave forth a thin
yellow cream for the oatmeal. True, she scoffed at it and said it wasn’t
as rich as skim milk in Cloverdale, but then the boarders were not used
to Cloverdale milk, and they called this cream. She picked and shredded
the codfish to a degree of fineness that would have made the departed
Maggie stand in amaze at such a waste of labor, and then with all the
skill of long experience, she mixed just the right proportion of
potatoes for the most delectable codfish balls, when they should be
browned to a crisp, that ever any one tasted.

“Codfish balls are good, and anybody that doesn’t like ’em when they are
made just right doesn’t know, that’s all. Besides one can’t have
beefsteak every day and there’s plenty else to eat.” So said Molly.

Then she tested the buckwheat cakes to be sure there was exactly the
right amount of soda and enough milk to make them brown on both sides,
and set the coffee where it would get its finishing-off, and rang the
bell. Just one minute ahead of time that bell rang. Molly Poppleton did
love to get ahead of time, even if it was but one minute.

“I say,” said Harry Knowles, holding a golden-brown fish-ball up on his
fork and admiring it, “if that is a fish-ball, then I never saw one
before. It is a libel on that pretty thing to call it by that name, or
else all the ones I ever tried to eat were very poor imitations.” Molly,
coming in just then with a generous supply of hot buckwheats heard the
remark, and her soul swelled with joy and pride, and thereafter Harry
Knowles was her favorite of all the boarders unless it was the minister
who grew into her good graces by another way not long after. He had come
in just a moment before, and was enjoying his dish of oatmeal and
wondering what made the difference between it and all the other oatmeal
he had tried to eat in the weeks since he came to Philadelphia to live.
Was it possible that he had at last found a place where things were
really good to eat, or was he getting a good appetite from working so
hard? He resolved, at any rate, to ask the cook, sometime when he was
well enough acquainted, if he might take a dish of this to the old
Scotch woman who was lying sick in an attic and longing for her dear
home across the seas.

                 *        *        *        *        *

That breakfast was a pleasant surprise to more than one of the boarders.
The brakeman, coming in a little late from his all-night run, having
taken his dinner the night before at the other end of his line, and
therefore not being prepared for changes except the mere fact that Mrs.
Morris had gone away, and some one else was to supply her place for a
while, was dumbfounded. He drew his chair up to the table with his usual
familiar assurance, and then looked around in almost embarrassment a
moment. He was not quite sure what made him feel so. Was it the
pleasant-faced, white-haired woman at the head of the table, who smiled
a good-morning to him in a tone which was cordial and yet had a note in
it that made him feel she was from another world than his own? Or was it
the few flowers in the tiny vase in the centre of the table? Or? But he
was unable to detail the rest of the changes, they seemed to him so
subtle. He turned his attention to the breakfast which certainly was
good. Maggie had improved, evidently.

In short, those boarders went to their day’s work well fed and
comfortable for the first time in many weeks, and were therefore better
workers, and better human beings in every way, because they were not all
day troubled by the demands and complaints of nature in consequence of
what they had eaten, or what they had not eaten.

Just as Celia was going out of the door, Miss Hannah, who had followed
her, put her hand on her arm and drew her into the parlor for a moment.

“Celia, dear,” she said, “we must have a talk to-night as soon after
dinner as possible, and find out how this house is to be run and decide
some questions. You know we cannot go ahead blindly and get into debt as
Mrs. Morris did.”

“I’ll risk you, auntie dear,” Celia said, as she kissed her behind the
red chenille curtain. “But we’ll have our talk, and I’ll get home just
as early as I can to help, if you need me. Then after dinner we’ll have
a cozy time and do a lot of figuring. I’ve done some already. Good-bye.
Don’t try to reform everything to-day, leave just a little for
to-morrow. Do you want me to stop at some employment office and get
another servant?”

“No, not yet, dear. There’s too much to be done before we introduce any
new elements, and besides we don’t know yet whether we can afford
another servant. We mustn’t run behind, you know.”

Then they parted with a smile of perfect understanding, and aunt Hannah
went to her new duties with enthusiasm. There were a few things she
meant to have radically different in some of her guests’ sleeping rooms
before that day drew to a close, and there was much planning and
marketing to do. Molly Poppleton was in her element in the kitchen. Miss
Hannah could hear her voice singing above the clatter of pots and pans,

                   “What though the spicy breezes
                     Blow soft o’er Ceylon’s isle;
                   Though every prospect pleases,
                     And only man is vile;—”

Molly was cleaning out the departed Maggie’s kettle closet under the
back stairs, and stopped occasionally in her singing to express her mind
as to some dirty corner and then went on—

                   “In vain with lavish kindness
                     The gifts of God are strewn;
                   The heathen in his blindness,
                     Bows down to wood and stone!”

Aunt Hannah smiled as she went upstairs. She knew that the good-hearted
Molly was mingling the theme of her song with her own thoughts about the
dirty house and the need of the boarders and that she would work it all
out by and by.

                 “Shall we whose souls are lighted
                   With wisdom from on high,—
                 Shall we to men benighted,
                   The lamp of life deny?”

went on the singer, and Miss Hannah knew the hard working singer’s
thought was that she would make a cheerful, clean house and good food,
and give the rest of them a chance to try and help save the poor city
heathen boarders, for Molly Poppleton looked upon all native city
boarders as heathen in the truest sense of the word, and she had taken
with joy the few words Miss Hannah had spoken to her about the mission
they were going to try to start, the mission of making one bright little
clean home spot for a few people who had hitherto been in discomfort.

The dining-room windows were washed that morning, and several other
windows, and Molly Poppleton sang a great many of Isaac Watts’ hymns
through before she prepared lunch for herself and Miss Hannah. She did
not remember when she had been so happy. Neither, indeed, did Miss
Hannah.

It had been the one great ambition of Hannah Grant’s life, since she had
lost the love of her youth, and been made to see that hers was not to go
on the great mission of salvation to the heathen of other nations, that
she should have some spot which she could call her own, where she might
exercise her powers of helping people. And now it seemed as though she
was to have opportunity. She thanked her heavenly Father every hour,
even for the dirt and desolation of the place, because he had given to
her the sweet privilege of brightening a place that had hitherto been
dark.

It was after dinner. The minister was in his room writing to his mother,
before he went out to a meeting at the mission. Down in the parlor the
brakeman sat at the organ accompanying himself as he sang in stentorian
voice the touching ballad of

            “Granny’s only left to me her old armchair.”

Celia smiled as she ran upstairs where her aunt was waiting for the
conference.

“Just listen, auntie dear, did you ever hear the like,” she said,
putting her head in at the door, and the words of the chorus in decided
nasal twang floated up the two flights of stairs:

               “How they tittered, how they chaffed,
               How my brothers and my sisters laughed,
               When they heard the lawyers declare,
               Granny’s only left to me her old armchair.”

“Do you really think, aunt Hannah, that it’s any use to try to reach and
help people who have that sort of taste in music, even if you try
through their taste in buckwheat cakes?”

Celia’s face was gay with laughter, but there was an undertone of
trouble in it which Miss Hannah detected and understood.

“Dearie, Christ died for him, even if he does seem to be too
coarse-grained to understand the little refining influences you are
trying to weave around him. Yes, of course it is worth while. You can’t
expect him to turn into a person with the tastes of a Beethoven. You are
not that yourself, remember, and it’s all in the scale of life. But I
know what you mean, and I do think it’s worth while to try. You see if
it wasn’t, God wouldn’t have put him just here for us to try on. You
mustn’t expect the same result as you would from——”

“From your new boarder, auntie? The gambler with the smile you mean?”
Celia was laughing now, for both had seen with the morning light that
whatever else their new boarder was, he was a man to be trusted.

“Yes,” said aunt Hannah. “You mustn’t expect the same results from
trying to help this man that you would the other, but you’ll find he
will have a depth to his nature which you don’t suspect, if you look for
it. Listen! He is singing something else. It may give you a clue.”

Again the voice rang out deeply, pathetically and nasally,

                 “Lost on the Lady Elgin,
                   Slumbering to wake no more,
                 Numbering about three hundred,—
                   Who failed to reach the shore.”

“Oh, auntie, I can’t stand another line,” said Celia rushing into the
room and throwing herself on the bed in a paroxysm of laughter. “To have
those awful words in that ludicrous song roared out in that dramatic way
is too, _too_ funny. And he asked me if I would sing ‘Where is my
wandering boy to-night?’ with him. How _could_ I?”

“How, dear girl,” said aunt Hannah sitting down on the bed beside her,
“perhaps that is just your chance. Sing ‘Where is my wandering boy
to-night?’ with him some time. You may be able to help him to higher,
more refining things in some way, even if he does continue to amuse you
with his music. If you want to help all these people, you will have to
do as Paul did and be all things to all men, that you may by all means
save some.”

Celia sobered down at once.

“Yes, I know, aunt Hannah, but somehow I never could be that, unless I
was interested in people. It troubles me sometimes, but this
black-eyebrowed, smiling, conceited brakeman isn’t in the least
attractive. Now that boy Harry Knowles is. I feel sorry for him. He
misses his mother, and I’m afraid he goes with a wild set. I got him to
fix some chairs last night and he seemed interested and stayed at home.
But to-night he slipped out just before I came up, and looked the other
way when I came down the hall, as if he didn’t want me to see him and
ask him to stay in, at least I fancy that was the reason, because I’ve
asked him to stay once or twice. It worries me to think he is going
wrong, and I feel as if I could pray all night that God would save him.
I can’t get away from that look in the eyes of his mother’s picture. He
brought it down to the parlor one night and showed it to me. And he is
so young, only just eighteen. Auntie, I want to do so much for the
people, do you suppose God will let me do something at least?”

“Dear child,” said aunt Hannah as she bent over and kissed her, “I feel
sure he will, and he will hear your prayers and help you to work in the
right way and to be interested in the uninteresting, too. And now get
your pencil and paper and let’s go to work.”

Celia sprang up and soon they were hard at work.

“What I want to do is this, aunt Hannah,” said Celia. “I want to make
this as pleasant a home for us all, as it can be made on the money that
we all pay in for our board. You and I will pay ours too, you know, that
is if it can’t be run without that, and then we’ll just have things as
nice as we can on that. If we need anything extra, why you and I can
count that a gift, you know, from our allowance. But to be strictly
honest as a boarding-house, and not a charitable institution, we ought
to run it on what is paid in, oughtn’t we? I would like to prove that a
boarding-house can be comfortable as well as cheap. Do you think it can
be done?”

“I do,” said the elder woman, thoughtfully. “I have done some careful
thinking myself, and I think it can. I shall enjoy trying, anyway.”

“And auntie, there’s another thing; this allowance of mine is half yours
you know. I won’t have it any other way. You and I have nine hundred
dollars a year to live on, besides what is now in the bank in cash, and
we can do what we please with it, give it away if we want to. If we can
make this house pay our board, then we will have the rest to live on.
But if we can’t, we’ll run the house up to the full extent of what we
can afford to put into it, for a few months at least, just to give these
poor souls a taste of something like home. I would rather do that than
give my money somewhere else, for I think they all need it. Do you
think, auntie, we have enough money to start on to hope to make things
go nicely at the beginning? Nine hundred dollars a year seems to me a
great deal of money, but people say that money doesn’t go far in the
city.”

Celia’s brow was clouded as she spoke.

“There goes my girl down into her cellar of despair over a thought,”
said aunt Hannah, leaning over to smooth the pucker out of her niece’s
brow. “I wish you would get just a little more trust in your heavenly
Father, that he will take care of the work he has put into your hands,
and see that it prospers in spite of your worries. Now tell me
everything you know about this house and the way it is run.”




                              CHAPTER XIV.


Aunt Hannah and Celia had finished the last puzzling question, added up
the final row of figures, and were peacefully sleeping in their beds.
All the lights in the house were out, when there was heard a loud noise
at the street door, as if some one was thrown, or threw himself, several
times heavily against it. This was followed by voices talking loud and
excitedly, and then in more muffled tones. The door knob was turned and
rattled, and a latchkey clicked and half turned in the lock as if
handled by clumsy or unacquainted fingers.

The minister heard the noise first, as his room was over the front of
the house, and rising he opened his window and tried to speak and quiet
the disturbance, but he received only curses for his interference, and
he thought he recognized in one of the midnight revelers the form of one
of the boarders. Closing his window, he dressed as rapidly as possible,
that he might go down if his assistance was needed. By the time he was
half-way down the stairs, however, and was just striking a match, the
fumbling latchkey at last turned, and the door burst open, literally
tumbling into the hall three young men just at Horace Stafford’s feet.
Miss Grant and Celia, though they slept on the third floor, were near
the stair landing and had at last heard the noise. They had slipped on
wrappers and slippers and stood at the head of the stairs just above Mr.
Stafford, as he struck the light.

“What does this mean?” said aunt Hannah, in as stern a voice as she
could muster, with Celia, bewildered and trembling, clinging to her arm
and begging her to come back.

But there was too much disturbance below for her to be heard, and she
and Celia could but stand and watch.

The new boarder seemed to know what to do in the present emergency. He
promptly lighted the gas, turning it up to its full strength, and then
extricated the three young men, who seemed to be in a helplessly tangled
condition on the floor at his feet. Two of them were promptly withdrawn
from the hall by their comrades outside, and the one left stood
miserably against the wall and looked about him.

It was hard to recognize in this dirty, rough fellow with bloodshot eyes
and white face, the gay, bright young man who always looked so neat, and
whom everybody liked and called “Harry.”

“Oh, auntie, that is Harry Knowles,” said Celia, in horrified tones, and
then the young man looked up.

“Hulloa, Celia,” he called, in a pitifully gay voice, “is that you? Yes,
I’m here all right, only I’ve been out on a lark and the lark’s gone to
my head. Come down, and talk to a fellow a while, just fer a change, you
know.”

Celia shrank back in dismay, as she saw the poor fellow stagger toward
the stairs and heard him say, “Can’t you get down? Well, I’ll come up
and get you. Awful shaky stairs, I know, but I’ll manage ’em yet, don’t
you be afraid.”

And then a strong hand grasped his arm and a clear, commanding voice
said,

“Stand right where you are! Don’t stir a step, and don’t speak another
word to those ladies.” Then the minister turned to the frightened women
and said in low tones,

“Don’t be afraid, go to your rooms and I will take care of him.”

Harry had sat stupidly down on the stairs saying meekly,

“All right, cap’n, jes’s you say. You’re boss, an’ I’m sleepy.”

Miss Hannah took assurance from the calm face and powerful frame of her
new boarder and led Celia away, while the minister carefully and even
tenderly helped the young man to his room and took care of him as if he
had been his own brother.

Miss Hannah had her hands full with Celia. The young girl had thrown
herself on the bed in a violent fit of weeping, and it required all her
aunt’s persuasive powers to quiet her and try to soothe her to sleep.
Celia had not been accustomed to young men who drank. Her cousins had
been steady, whatever else they might not have been. She had never seen
a man come home at night drunk, and she had never been spoken to by one.

The familiar tone and the vacant, silly stare with which the young man
had looked up at her had given her a shock she could not forget.
Whenever she tried to be quiet and sit up and listen to aunt Hannah, she
would shudder again at the thought of the scene she had just witnessed.
By and by, when she was calmer she wailed out,

“Now we shall have to give up the whole thing, auntie. We can’t have
people getting drunk,” and she shuddered again.

“Now, child! Don’t get into your cellar of despair again. It’s like some
people’s cyclone cellars out West, always there ready for you, and you
fly down the stairs at sign of the first little cloud that appears in
your sky. Can’t you remember we have a heavenly Father who is looking
out for us? Get a little more trust, dear. No, of course we shall not
have to give up, just for one boarder who has gone wrong. We are not
obliged to keep him, you know, if he makes a disturbance. But I’d not be
the first one to turn him out without another trial. What are we here
for but to try to help such as he? Maybe he never was really drunk
before. He is young and doesn’t look to be bad. He’ll be sorry enough
for it all to-morrow, I’m sure, or I’ve mistaken the face of that
picture of his mother on his bureau. A boy who has had a mother like
that can’t go wrong all at once. We’ll do what we can for him. You have
some work to do for him, dear, and you must try and forget to-night for
Christ’s sake!”

“Oh, aunt Hannah!” groaned Celia, “how can I ever speak to him again,
after his talking that way to me, and calling me by my name, too, as if
I was a little girl? The idea of his taking the liberty of speaking that
way. Oh, I feel as if I never could try to help anybody again.”

“Now, Celia!” said aunt Hannah, speaking rather sharply for her, “you
must _not_ talk that way. That wasn’t Harry Knowles that spoke to you
to-night. It was a demon that he had swallowed that had taken entire
possession, and put out for a time the light of reason in him. You told
me yourself that he has always been respectful, and he’s nothing but a
boy in years, much younger than you. And Celia, he is very dear to your
Saviour.”

Aunt Hannah’s heart had gone out to the poor motherless boy, and she
longed to save him from the awful destruction that she saw yawning in
front of the path he was treading. Celia knew her aunt was right, and by
degrees she regained her composure, and began to mount up into the first
story at least of her faith, and believe that everything was not gone to
destruction yet. However, she went to the store the next morning with a
heavy heart. She had so great a horror of drunkards and drunkenness, and
so strong a belief in the power of appetite, that she felt little or no
hope of trying to save any one from the awful end of a drunkard, who had
once commenced to tread that downward path. She went about all day,
feeling as deep sadness as if she had witnessed the terrible death of
some friend.

Miss Hannah had spent a long time in prayer that night, after she heard
once more the regular breathing of Celia, and knew she was asleep. She
asked God’s grace to help her do what was best for this poor homeless
boy, and if it might be that he would honor her with bearing the message
of salvation to his soul, she would give God all the glory. Her soul
longed for the soul of the boy whose feet were astray, and she was
filled with a kind of divine compassion for him, such as Jesus would
have us feel, such as he felt, for those for whom he died.

The minister, meantime, had put the poor boy to bed. He was docile
enough, and almost grateful in a maudlin sort of way, for the help given
him, and he sank at once into a deep sleep. Horace Stafford turned the
gas low, and established himself by the bedside for some time, until he
felt certain that there was nothing else the matter with the slumberer.
Then he knelt beside the boy, and asked God’s mercy for him and went to
his own room.

It was not until far into the afternoon that the sleeper roused. Horace
Stafford had found out by judicious questioning, and without revealing
his condition to the other boarders (who fortunately had none of them
heard the disturbance in the night), where the young man worked. He had
then gone himself to the store, and asked for the head of the firm,
giving his own card and explaining that the young salesman was ill, and
unable to come to work that day. The head of the firm had been very
kind. He had recognized the name of the minister as well as that of the
mission chapel which he mentioned in introducing himself, thinking the
word of a minister might go further toward excusing the absence of the
young man, and asked kindly how the work was getting on. He said he had
meant to send in a contribution to that work, but had let it slip by
without attention, and he handed the minister a crisp ten dollar bill.
Then he promised to see that young Knowles’ place for the day was
supplied, and asked to be notified if the illness should prove serious,
and there was anything he could do for him. He said he liked the young
man, though of course he knew but little of him, but he feared he had
not good health, as he looked frail. When Horace Stafford left the
store, he had a better opinion of employers than he had been led to hold
from some reading he had been doing lately.

When Harry Knowles awoke that afternoon, he was conscious first of his
physical condition. His head ached miserably, and he could not bear to
stir. His throat burned as with fire, and all things seemed full of a
ghastly horror. He opened his eyes, and the first thing he saw was his
mother’s picture. It stood on the bureau opposite his bed. Miss Hannah
had been softly going about the room that morning, putting things to
rights, and putting a touch of home here and there where she could do it
in a few minutes. She had wiped the dust from the velvet and polished
the glass of the frame with a damp cloth, and the clear sweet eyes of
Harry’s mother looked straight into his, so full of love and compassion
and motherly tenderness, that Harry felt it all and suddenly realized
his present condition and what had caused it. He could not bear his
mother’s tender love. She seemed to be looking through into his very
soul. He closed his eyes to shut hers out. As he did so, all his
experiences of last night came swiftly and stood before him one by one,
and passed before his mother’s eyes too. He seemed to know at every
instant what she would be feeling about it all. He recalled his resolve
to stay in, and how the boys called for him before he had settled down
to doing anything, and asked him to just come out for a while; how they
had coaxed him away from his resolves, and interested him in their plans
for the evening. They had planned an evening at the theatre and a supper
afterward, and they made him feel that he was being considered mean not
to join in and help with the expenses, since they had taken his coming
as a matter of course, and ordered a seat and a plate for him. They
joked him unmercifully, and said they believed he had been going to
Sunday-school again, and had promised his nice little teacher that he
would be good. They called him a “dear little fellow,” and said they
wouldn’t bother him any more, he should have a stick of pink and white
candy so he should, and one of them actually bought it and presented it
to him. He had knocked it into the street, and declared he had no
intention of not joining them and bearing his share of the expense, and
then they all seemed glad and turned his mind to enjoyment. “We didn’t
really believe you were getting to be a sissy boy,” they said. His
conscience had had no time to reproach him. They had not mentioned going
in to any of their favorite haunts for a game—that game which he had
begun to fear on account of the way it reduced his always scanty funds.
They only seemed bent on having an innocent good time. Oh, they had
known well how to get him into the thing. They knew they could touch
something that he called his sense of honor, when they said he had left
them in a tight place, as they had ordered supper for him, and if he
didn’t pay for it they would have to do it. And they took him to a play
that was _very_ funny. He enjoyed fun. There were one or two things
toward the end that had brought a warm flush to his cheeks at the time,
because he couldn’t help thinking how ashamed his mother would be to
know he was listening to and laughing at such things. But he wouldn’t
have had the fellows know that for anything. He had gone to that supper
and been as jolly as any of them after it. But he had resolved, when he
gave it to them, that he would not drink. That had been the great reason
why he had tried to decline. When people offered him drink, he could
always hear his mother’s voice saying, “Harry dear, mother hopes you
will always have courage to say no, if you are ever asked to drink wine
or any strong drink.” He tried to make it right with his conscience when
he turned to go with the boys, by saying that he would not drink a drop.
He knew they would ask him, and it would be uncomfortable to refuse, but
he had done it heretofore, and he would do it to-night. After to-night,
he would try to gradually drift away from that set. It would not do to
break off all of a sudden, but he would try to do it gradually. Of
course he could. Had he not stayed at home that evening when Miss Murray
fixed the lamp, and then again last night? Both of these times he had
promised to go with the boys. He felt strong with the sense of having
conquered once before. He did not remember a Bible verse then that his
mother used often to quote to him, “Let him that thinketh he standeth
take heed lest he fall,” he only told himself that he had proved to
himself that he was fully able to break off going with those boys
whenever he chose, and therefore he had a right to go with them for a
little innocent fun just once more.

Ah, but he did not know even now, as he lay here in his bed with shame
in his heart, and the tears of repentance overflowing his eyes and
trickling between the tightly closed lashes, that Satan had leagued
against him last night, and that those boys had vowed to conquer his
foolish protests once and for all, and get him gloriously drunk. Once
let him break down that silly shame, they said, and he would be a jolly
good fellow, for Harry was bright and quick-witted. Why they wanted to
do it is not quite certain. Perhaps some of them were fiendish enough to
want to drag him down as low as themselves, just for very love of
deviltry. Others, perhaps, felt rebuked by his shrinking back at daring
things which were proposed, and still others, older in their sin, liked
him for his gay words and witty sayings, and were resolved to make of
him a thoroughly good bad-fellow whom they could enjoy. Their experience
had taught them that when one such once goes astray, he will dare more
than some who never had any scruples.

Harry only knew that they had passed some cider first. They declared
they had ordered it for his sake as they knew his temperance principles,
and they laughed and nudged one another as it was passed and winked, and
Harry felt goaded to do almost anything to prove that he was just as
good, or as bad, as they were.

Now Harry was not fond of sweet cider. The few times he had tasted it,
it had seemed insipid to him. He knew, indeed, that there were some
people who went so far as to object to cider drinking. In a general way,
he knew that there was a difference between sweet and hard cider, and it
would have been well for him that night, if he had been possessed of a
few decided opinions on the subject himself. He hesitated and then took
some, but his hesitation was noticed and the boys had asked him if he
were afraid of that too. He had flushed crimson and declared that he was
not, and they had unmercifully passed his glass for more, and watched to
see if he drank that. Then something else had been brought on, Harry did
not just know what, whether wine or beer or something else. The cider
had been by no means sweet and must have gone to his head. When they
passed by his chair with the wine glasses, he had caught the whispered
words and laughs of his companions over him, and turning quick without a
thought for anything than to prove his—what?—cowardice? he ordered the
waiter to give him some. A tremendous cheer had arisen from the boys, so
loud it almost brought him to his senses. He drank that glass and
another, and then he felt a feverish desire to swallow more, and they
filled his glass again and again, he not asking or caring what it
contained. That was the story. He did not know now, or stop to ask
himself how he got here, to what he called home. He supposed it was in
the same shameful way that some of the others were taken sometimes, the
way that had hitherto been a strong barrier in the way of his joining in
their drinking festivities. Whether any one saw or knew, he did not dare
to ask. He only knew that he lay here, and that his mother’s eyes were
over there, and that God always seemed to be near his mother, and that
he did not dare to open his eyes again. He heard the soft movement of a
woman’s dress, and a light step. It seemed like his mother’s. He could
almost think as he lay here that this was his home once more, and his
mother was nursing him from some dreadful illness. Only this bed was so
hard. Oh, the shame and horror if this had happened at his dear old home
with his mother in it. It would have killed her. He groaned aloud, and
then he heard that soft step again and wondered. Was he dead? Was this
the—where? the judgment seat—perhaps? For his mother surely was there
and God! Oh!——




                              CHAPTER XV.


Some one stood beside him and put a large cool hand on his aching brow,
and a woman’s voice, gentle and low, said “Drink this.”

Then, although his very being was filled with disgust at the thought of
eating or drinking anything, he let himself be raised from the pillow
and swallow down the hot steaming coffee that was held for him. Miss
Hannah gave his pillows a shake, and he settled back again with his eyes
closed. He did not care for the coffee; he wondered that he could have
drunk it, and yet he knew by the aroma of it that it was unlike any
coffee he had ever drank in that house before, and there gradually crept
over him a sense of relief from the drinking of it. It was not that the
throbbing in his temples was any less, but perhaps he felt a little
better able to bear it. Miss Hannah brought a clean linen cloth and a
large soft towel, and washed his hot face and hands, just as his mother
used to do when he was sick, and gently smoothed his tumbled hair. He
did not look at her. His eyes were closed tight, and he was trying with
all his might to force back the hot tears that were surely burning their
way out beneath his lashes. The tears came and Miss Hannah saw them. She
stooped and kissed him softly on his forehead and said in that gentle
pitying voice again, “Poor boy!” and then she slipped away and left him
alone.

If Hiram Bartlett had been there he would have said that aunt Hannah was
encouraging drunkenness by giving the young man so much attention; that
pity was not what such a fellow needed, he ought to be soundly thrashed.
He would get an idea that it was a fine thing to come home drunk, if he
were petted and taken care of for it. But Hiram Bartlett was not there,
and aunt Hannah was glad. She did what she felt in her inmost soul Jesus
Christ would have her do, if she could hear his voice telling her.

When she slipped away and left Harry alone, it was to tap lightly on the
minister’s door and tell him Harry was awake.

It was not the first time that day she had been to the minister’s room.
She had resolved in the watches of the night that she would discover for
herself what sort of a man was the stranger whom she had taken in the
first night she came. He seemed to be all right, and he had helped nobly
in this emergency. Now, if he only were a Christian, how much help he
might be with this young man. She thought she knew a way to discover for
herself without asking him, so instead of letting Molly “do his room”
the next morning, she attended to that hall herself. She knew, if he
were a Christian, she would be likely to find evidence of it somewhere
about his room. It therefore gave her much pleasure and some surprise,
when she found on entering to make the bed, not only the Bible in full
view, but also a number of what appeared to be theological books. She
glanced them over. There was a row of old familiar ones, in rusty
bindings, “Barnes’ Notes” and a few kindred commentaries standing
against the wall, on the floor. There was a soap box beside them
containing other volumes yet unpacked, not many, but at the top lay two
of F. B. Meyer’s, and Andrew Murray’s “With Christ in the School of
Prayer.” These were dear favorites and friends of hers, and she began to
hope that perhaps she was entertaining a minister. This hope was
confirmed a few minutes afterward when the postman came and brought
several letters for the Rev. Horace Stafford. She made his bed and set
in order that room with a light in her face then, for was she not
serving one of her Master’s high messengers? When Mr. Stafford came in
later, she had a short conference about young Mr. Knowles, and they
agreed that he should go to the store, and after the young man awoke he
should have a little talk with him.

Harry lay still for some minutes reviewing his miserable existence, and
going over the last few months of mistakes and sins. Suddenly it
occurred to him that it must be late and he ought to get up and go to
his work. With a moan, he turned over and tried to get out of bed, but
he was dizzy and sick, and he had to sit still and cover his eyes. He
was not yet so used to dissipation that he could rise and go about like
any one else the next day, and the dissipation had been deeper than he
knew. What mixed or drugged glasses were given him, after he began to
drink, he did not remember. Therefore, he could scarcely account for the
effect they had had.

Just then there came a knock at his door and Mr. Stafford entered. He
had been listening for some sound, and was ready. He wanted to help the
boy when he should fully come to his senses and realize his condition,
and keep him, perhaps, from rushing out to drink again. Of course, he
knew nothing about Harry’s past life, but he judged from his appearance
and from what little he could learn of his character that this was
probably a first experience, or if not the first, that at least he was
not yet a hardened sinner.

“Do you feel any better?” asked Mr. Stafford, in a pleasant, everyday
tone, such as he would use for any illness of any one.

Harry looked up, his bloodshot eyes and white face making a pitiful
picture of wretchedness.

“I feel worse than I ever felt in my life before,” he answered, all the
bright gaiety with which he was usually bubbling over, gone entirely out
of his voice.

“Better lie down again,” said his visitor. “You are hardly able to get
up yet.”

“But I must get up,” said Harry in a despairing tone. “What time is it?
It must be late. I’ll get fired if I’m not on time. They’re terribly
particular down there.”

“Never mind the time. You’re not to go to the store to-day,” answered
the other quietly, in a tone that seemed used to commanding obedience.

“Why not!” asked Harry sharply, looking at Mr. Stafford with sudden
apprehension in his eyes. “Have they found out and sent me my walking
papers already? What time is it? How long have I been here? Let me up.
But it’s no use if they’ve found out. I’m done for. I might as well go
to destruction first as last,” and he sank back with a groan and turned
his face to the wall.

“Listen, my boy,” said the young minister bending over him and placing a
kindly hand on his shoulder. “Don’t say that. You are not going to
destruction. We won’t let you. And you need not feel like that. You have
not been dismissed. Your place is waiting for you when you are able to
go back. The firm knows nothing but that you are too ill to be at your
work to-day. It is afternoon, and you have slept all day. You are to lie
still now until you are perfectly able to get up, and I am going to take
care of you. Is there anything you would like to have?”

Harry turned over and opened his eyes in astonishment.

“How do you know I’m not to be dismissed? Has any one been there?”

“Yes, I was there this morning and had a good long talk with Mr.
Prescott. He seemed very sympathetic and asked me to send him word, if
you were not better to-morrow.”

Harry closed his eyes and swallowed hard. He was almost overcome by the
kindness that had been shown him. Suddenly, he remembered dimly the
scene of the night before.

“Say,” said he, huskily, “where was I, that is—how, what did I—do? Who
was down there last night when I came in? How did I get here?”

“I brought you up here,” answered Mr. Stafford, quietly, in a
matter-of-fact tone. “Miss Grant was present.” He thought it as well
that Harry should not know that Celia had been there; it could do no
good and would only add to his embarrassment. “You have slept ever
since,” he finished briefly.

“Were the boarders around? Do they know?”

“No.”

There was silence a moment. Harry was trying to recall some faint
memory. At last he spoke.

“Didn’t I,—Wasn’t Miss Murray there too? Did I talk nonsense to her?”

The minister turned about and faced the young man and said truthfully,
“Yes, she was there, and you didn’t speak very respectfully to her, I
must own.”

Harry groaned again. “Oh, she’s been very kind to me,” he moaned. Then
after a pause. “But yet they didn’t turn me out of the house. If they
had turned me out I could have stood it, but I can’t stand being treated
this way. I haven’t been treated kindly since mother died.” Then his
weakened nerves gave way and he cried, as if he had been a girl.

Horace Stafford let him cry for a few minutes. He thought it might do
him good. He had no mind to minimize the offence. It was grave and
serious and must be realized.

Presently he began to talk in low, grave tones, and the young man on the
bed ceased moaning and showed that he was listening. When he was
quieter, Mr. Stafford drew from him as much of the story of the evening
before as he could remember. He talked with him long and seriously about
life and the true meaning of it, about the wonderful trust that God gave
each one, when he put him upon the earth and gave him the responsibility
of doing the best he was capable of. He drew him on to speak of his
mother and his boyhood life. He did not talk too long. This man who was
a fisher of men had been gifted with rare tact. He seemed to know just
what to say and when to say it and, what is sometimes much more
important, he knew when to keep still. He gave just the right note of
warning to the young man before him, but he knew enough of human nature
to see at once that here was true repentance, and deep humiliation, and
that that lesson did not need to be further impressed this time. What he
needed now was kindly sympathy and help to get upon his feet again.

Harry, in a pause, reverted to Celia. What should he do? He never could
look her in the face again, and she had been so kind to him.

“Tell her so,” said Mr. Stafford, promptly, as if it were the easiest
thing in the world to do. “Just beg her pardon as manfully as you can,
and then look out that you are never so placed that you will do so
again.”

The slender frame of the young man on the bed shook involuntarily as he
said fiercely, “I should hope not.”

There came Miss Grant’s light tap at the door, and a dainty tray was
handed in. Harry thought to himself that he could not eat, that he never
could eat again, but when the tray was placed in front of him, and Mr.
Stafford said in his quiet, commanding voice, “Now eat every bit of
that,” he found that he could.

Miss Grant knew by instinct just what to prepare for the invalid. Not
dainties, and jellies and confectionery. Just a small, thin, white china
bowl of very strong soup, containing much nutrition in small compass and
sending forth an odor most delicious; some thin beautifully toasted
slices of bread, a ball of sweet butter and more of that black aromatic
coffee. The minister mentally decided that aunt Hannah must be an expert
in the culinary art. So many kind women would have brought forth sour
bread, muddy coffee and a piece of dyspeptic pudding or pie or cake, or
perhaps tried more solid substantial foods where there was no appetite.
He noted also the fineness of the napkin with which the tray was
covered, the thin transparency of the china bowl, and that the spoon was
apparently solid silver, old and thin as if it were an heirloom, but
bright and unmistakably of aristocratic origin and pleasant withal to
use. He noticed these things because they had been a part of his former
existence before he had given his life up to saving souls, and because
since he came to live in boarding-houses, he had sometimes missed their
absence in a vague, undefined way. He had not known that he cared about
these little accessories of a refined life, but he was conscious that he
recognized a friendly look in that spoon and bowl and fine linen. He did
not know that these things were among the very few bits of home that
Miss Grant had brought with her, and that she had carefully hunted them
out of a trunk that had not yet been unpacked, because she felt that
perhaps these dishes might help in the work of saving that soul.

Nor was she wrong. Harry knew silver when he saw it. This lunch seemed
like one his mother would have prepared for him.

“Now, sir,” said Mr. Stafford, as he lighted the gas and prepared to be
cheerful while the young man ate his supper, “you must forget everything
about this for a while, and just eat your supper and enjoy it.” He
laughed pleasantly, and Harry looked up with a wan smile and thanked him
in his heart for lifting the heavy burden for a few minutes. Mr.
Stafford could talk, even if Harry just then could not, and he showed
that he had no trouble in summoning to his command just the right thing
at the right time. He began to tell in detail the story of a young man
in whom he was interested, who had a wife and young family dependent
upon his efforts, and who was out of work, and unable to find a
position. He had spent some time that day trying to find him work,
unsuccessfully, and he told his various efforts describing the different
employers so well, that once Harry forgot his own troubles and was
beguiled into a laugh.

Celia, passing the door just then, heard them laughing and one more
little wrinkle crept into her white brow of care. She thought Mr.
Stafford must be a queer minister to laugh with a young man who had
recently committed so grave an offence against the laws of God and of
society. Poor Celia, she had had a hard day, what with doing her own
work, and carrying on her heart the thought of Harry Knowles drunk. It
was not that she cared more for that boy than she would have done for
any other, but it was the shock to her faith in human nature to find one
whom she had believed to be at least tolerably good and interesting,
suddenly appear in the condition in which he had been. Young people are
often prone to look upon their faith in human nature as something akin
to their faith in God, something holy and religious, which if broken
outrages their belief almost in the kindness of their God. Perhaps this
is the reason that sometimes, sweet honest souls have to pass through
the fiery trial of believing in, even to loving, some human brother or
sister, only to find them utterly false. Such need to learn the lesson
of quaint George Herbert, that

                      “Even the greatest griefs
                      May be reliefs,
          Could he but take them right, and in their ways.
                      Happy is he whose heart
                      Hath found the art
          To turn his double pains to double praise.”




                              CHAPTER XVI.


“It’s my opinion,” said Molly Poppleton, standing with her arms akimbo
and facing Miss Grant as she entered the kitchen one morning shortly
after breakfast, “that them three-cent girls need ‘tendin’ to.” She set
her lips firmly and then returned to the polishing of her range.

Miss Hannah went on with her work. She was rubbing pumpkin through a
colander and reducing it to the velvety texture she always required in
her pies. She waited calmly for Molly to go on with her reasons, as she
knew she would soon. Molly finished the oven door and stood up again.

“Yes, they need ‘tendin’ to bad. If you’d just go up to their room once
you’d find out. There’s a stack of paper novils in their closet knee
deep, an’ there’s pictures round that room of women from the-_ay_-tres,
without much clo’es on, that are perfickly scand’lous. Besides, they’ve
got a picture of them two took in a tin type down to Atlantic City with
bathing suits on, an’ two young fellers along side of ’em without much
on but a little underclo’es. They are grinning fit to kill, and look
real silly. No decent girls would have a picture took like that, let
alone keep it round in sight afterward.”

“Well, Molly, you know all girls have not been brought up alike,” said
Miss Hannah, as she measured out the cinnamon and ginger. “Molly, bring
me the big yellow bowl and the molasses jug.”

“I should hope not,” said Molly, as she put the jug down on the table
with a thump, and went back to her range. “Not like them, anyway. You
don’t know all. They have any amount of little pink and blue tickets
lying round droppin’ out of pockets and the like, an’ I give that one
they call Mamie one I picked up in the hall, thinkin’ it was something
valuable, an’ she laughed an’ said it was no good, just an old
the-_ay_-tre ticket, been used. ‘My land!’ says I, not being able to
keep still. ‘If all them round your room is the-_ay_-tre tickets, you
must’ve been an awful lot!’ Then she giggled an’ got red an’ says, ‘Yes,
most every night now,’ an’ the other one, the one they call Carrie, she
spoke up, and says she, ‘Yes, she’s got plenty of gentlemen friends,
Molly, an’ so have I,’ an’ then they both laughed and went out. Now I
s’pose it ain’t none of my business, but I must say them girls ought to
be back with their mothers. They can’t be over fifteen a day, or sixteen
anyway. They ought to be in bed every night by nine o’clock. They ain’t
fit to sit at the same table with Miss Celia with their bangs and their
dirty teeth and black finger nails. The fact is I’d like to give ’em
both a good bath anyway.”

Molly slammed out of the kitchen and Miss Hannah heard her sweeping the
dining-room with all her might and main.

She went on measuring her milk and beating her eggs, and fashioning the
flaky crust in the pie pans, and thinking. The fact was she had been
troubled about those two girls herself. She felt that they needed a
great deal of help and so far she had been utterly unable to approach
them. They seemed shy and uncomfortable when she came near them, and had
grown silent at the table, too, unless the tenor brakeman was present.
Then the three carried on a bantering conversation in suppressed tones,
with half glances toward the others. Miss Grant wondered what it was
that there always seemed to be some people about her whose hearts she
could not reach. It was just so with Nettie, she never could make any
headway in training that child. As a little girl, she had been sullen
and silent when she was remonstrated with by her aunt for any fault, and
as a young woman she had been impertinent and cold for days after any
attempt on the part of aunt Hannah to change her plans. With Hiram too,
aunt Hannah had felt the same repellent influence and she wondered why
it was, though she had prayerfully and conscientiously longed to be to
these people what God wanted her to be, that she did not seem able to
reach their hearts in any way. Now these two girls weighed heavily upon
her. She had watched them for days and had determined to make some move
pretty soon. She felt sure there was need of help for them, and urgent
need, far beyond what Molly had bluntly expressed. And while aunt Hannah
weighed and measured and baked and thought, she was making in her mind a
plan for the salvation of Mamie Williams and Carrie Simmons.

She had noticed Mamie several times lately when Celia came to the table,
and she knew that she watched Celia intently and admired her afar, at
least she admired her in so far as outward adornments were concerned.
Even during the few weeks since aunt Hannah had come to Philadelphia,
she had noticed the gradual change in Mamie’s dress, from gay and fussy
and frivolous, to a style somewhat more subdued and neat. She had
reduced the baggy bunches of frizzy hair that used to project over her
forehead and loop far down over her ears, till they were more like
Celia’s graceful braids with a stray curl slipping out here and there.
She still wore her many colored finger rings, but there were other
little changes about her that showed she was to a certain extent making
Celia a model just now. Aunt Hannah’s brow cleared. She thought she knew
a way to Mamie’s heart and perhaps through hers to Carrie’s. Celia had
an influence and she could help. But how to bring that about in the
wisest way, that was aunt Hannah’s puzzle, for Celia was very much
disgusted with the actions of the two “three-centers” as she called
them. She never noticed them in any way, and her dignified bearing at
the table was always meant to be a rebuke to them. Celia did not like
those two girls, and while she was willing that their lives should be
made more comfortable by their sharing in the good food that aunt Hannah
now provided for Mrs. Morris’ old boarders, still Celia would not have
felt badly to have had them leave that their places might be occupied by
more interesting people.

                 *        *        *        *        *

Celia was getting to be a sort of a puzzle anyway. She did not enter
into some things as her aunt had supposed she would. Instead she held
aloof, and seemed troubled about something. She did not even make
friends with the young minister, in whom aunt Hannah saw growing
possibilities of a valued friendship for them all. He and she had talked
together on themes of mutual interest, and he had shown that he was a
man of culture and education. Aunt Hannah was not a match-maker, and did
not immediately think of every young man in the light of a possible
husband for her dear Celia, but she did have ambitions that Celia might
have friends who would be helpful in every way to her, both spiritually
and mentally, and she felt that such a friendship, though it were
nothing more than occasional converse on some literary theme, would be
excellent for the young girl whose ambitions and abilities were so far
beyond her opportunities. But Celia only smiled, and remained quiet and
distant, and told aunt Hannah that the young minister belonged to her,
and she must not expect her niece to take him on faith. Nevertheless,
she knew that no movement or word of Mr. Stafford’s at the table escaped
Celia. It was evident that she was measuring him.

Celia had not entered very heartily into the plans made for Harry
Knowles. She had done what she was told, it was true, but she had not
made plans herself. She seemed to have received a set-back on the night
when Harry came home drunk. There had been much to do in the evenings,
however, and her aunt had not had time to have a good long talk with
her. She felt that it ought to come at once. She put the pies in the
oven, closed the oven door carefully, and glancing at the clock went to
her own room to kneel as was her custom in perplexity and lay her
trouble all at her Master’s feet. Then she came back to her work about
the house with calm brow and untroubled heart, feeling sure the way
would be opened and words given her, if she must speak. She would have
made a good model for a study of a saint as she stood beside the
moulding board soon after and patted the smooth, light loaves into shape
for their last rising, bending her sweet, thoughtful face to her work,
her mind busy with the problems of souls, while she worked with her
hands to feed their bodies.

It was like a revelation of what God can do in a human soul through
sorrow, to look at Hannah Grant and think of her past life with its
buried and risen joys.

        “Methinks we do as fretful children do,
        Leaning their faces on the window pane
        To sigh the glass dim with their own breath’s stain,
        And shut the sky and landscape from their view.
        And thus, alas! since God, the Maker, drew
        A mystic separation ’twixt those twain,
        The life beyond us, and our souls in pain,
        We miss the prospect which we’re called unto
        By grief we’re fools to use. Be still and strong,
        O man, my brother! hold thy sobbing breath,
        And keep thy soul’s large window pure from wrong,
        That so, as life’s appointment issueth,
        Thy vision may be clear to watch along
        The sunset consummation-lights of death.”

“Auntie, who is the youth in the parlor so redolent of Hoyt’s German
cologne and cigarette smoke?” asked Celia, gaily, coming into her aunt’s
room just after dinner that night. “You opened the door for him, you
ought to know. I do hope he is not a new boarder, for I’m morally
certain he wouldn’t be any help, and I think we have enough heathen to
work for at present, don’t you? How don’t tell me you called me up to
ask my permission to take in that oily-looking youth, aunt Hannah.”

Aunt Hannah laughed and then grew grave.

“No, dear, not that,” she said, and then she drew the little rocker
close beside her own and said “Sit down, dear, I want to talk to you.”

“Why, aunt Hannah, what have I been doing that’s naughty?” asked Celia,
pretending to be scared. “This sounds like old times,” but she settled
herself comfortably and nestled her head lovingly on her aunt’s
shoulder.

“Well then, first of all, Celia, why do you act so strangely sometimes,
and what is the matter with Mr. Stafford? You and he ought to be
friends, and he could help much in the work you planned we should do
together. You seem to me to have lost your interest in the house and
everything in it, and I do not understand it. There is much that you
could do and ought to do at once, and you do not seem to care to go
about it.”

“Why, aunt Hannah, what has the minister to do with it all? I am afraid
you are mistaken in him as a helper. In fact I know you are. I had just
come home that night—the night after Harry had been drinking, you
know,—and was passing the door, and I heard Mr. Stafford’s laugh, and
then I heard Harry laugh, too, and I couldn’t help hearing that Mr.
Stafford was telling a funny story to Harry as I went on up the hall.
Now just think of that after what had happened. A pretty minister he is,
I think. He ought to have been preaching a sermon.”

“Celia! Take care how you judge without knowing. You cannot tell what
may have been the pointed moral of the funny story, and you do not know
but the Lord could use a laugh just then to help that young man better
than anything else, and he doubtless put it into the heart of his
servant to know that. I believe that man has rare tact in winning souls.
Be very careful, and be very slow ever to criticise the actions of a
minister. His office brings him nearer to God than most men.”

Celia’s cheeks flushed a little. She was slightly annoyed to have her
aunt speak in that way, but she respected the elder woman’s opinion too
much to resent the words or refuse the lesson. After a moment she said:

“Well, aunt Hannah, maybe I have been wrong, I’ll try to be good.” In
her heart Celia had another reason for her dignified coldness toward the
minister. She had recognized, after a few days, that he was a man of
unusual education and refinement. She immediately began to wonder
whether or not he looked down upon her, a saleswoman in a store, a poor
girl, who had to earn her own living. She settled it in her mind that he
probably did in a certain undefined way, though he probably did not
confess such things to himself as that might have conflicted with
certain Christian theories he felt himself bound to abide by. She told
herself that he should see that she never expected anything in the way
of courtesy even from him, and that she was one girl in the world, who
was not ready to fling herself forward for companionship with any
desirable young man that should chance to be thrown in her neighborhood.
She had been still further strengthened in her determination by a little
occurrence one evening a few days before this talk with her aunt.

The minister had gone to prayer meeting, having been busily engaged in
his room all day, so that aunt Hannah had not been able to finish
certain dusting and setting to rights there as thoroughly as she
desired. The evening had found her hands full of some kitchen work, and
she had requested Celia to slip up there when the halls were quiet,
while the occupant of the room was in meeting and finish the dusting.
Celia had been glad to help. She had turned the gas up and gone to work
in earnest, glancing interestedly at the rows of books over the little
table against the wall, and wishing she had opportunity to look them
over, but she would not put so much as a hand upon them except to do her
necessary work, in the absence of their owner. When she came to the
bureau she had to move some things to wipe the dust off beneath them. A
Bible was lying there open before a painted miniature of a most lovely
young woman. The pictured face was so beautiful that she could not but
look at it again as she carefully wiped the dust from the velvet and
gold of its case. The blue eyes and golden hair and the sweet
intellectual face stayed in her memory, and from the fact that the
miniature stood open before his Bible, she judged it was of some one
quite near and dear. Celia did not reason it out in words, but she
thought it well that she should maintain a maidenly dignity. However, as
her aunt talked, she saw that she had carried this feeling to an absurd
extremity. What was it to her what the young man thought, or how many
velvet-framed girls he carried in his pocket next his heart? She was in
the same house with him and must treat him with Christian courtesy, and
she need not necessarily make herself prominent before his eyes either.
She would try to do differently. He should henceforth be as one of the
other boarders to her.

“What else, auntie?” she asked, after a minute of thought, looking up.

“Harry, next,” said her aunt. “You ought to interest him in something
occasionally, as you once told me you did in a lamp. He is having a very
hard struggle to keep away from those companions who are after him every
day now, Mr. Stafford says. He does all he can for him, but you know his
meetings occupy so many evenings that he can do very little and he
hasn’t thought it wise to try to take him to church yet. You know he’s
nothing but a boy. He wants to be interested in something.”

“Yes,” said Celia, “I know. I’ll try. But, auntie, I can’t forget how he
looked that night,” and she shuddered. “But I’ll try to get up something
to help and that right away. Now what else? You always save the worst
dose till the last, I know you of old. Which is it? Miss Burns or the
tenor brakeman? Or—O _auntie_, now it _isn’t_ those three-centers!
Don’t tell me to try to do something for them, for I can’t,” and the
girl put up her hands in mock horror.

Miss Grant detailed to her what she knew of them, including an account
of Molly’s moralizing on the subject, and Celia laughed, and then grew
grave.

There came a call to the kitchen for Miss Grant then and she left Celia
thinking. When she returned a few minutes later she was greeted with
“Aunt Hannah, are those boards still in the cellar? Are they of any use
there? Because if they are not I’m going to make a cozy corner in the
parlor if you don’t object. I’ve thought of a beautiful way. Harry will
help, I’m sure. He sat in the parlor looking glum when I came up. Do you
suppose I must get the three-centers to help? Would they come, do you
think? And say, by the way, auntie, who did you say that oily youth in
the parlor was?”

“His name, he said, was Mr. Clarence Jones and he asked for Miss
Simmons. I called her and I think she went out with him, for I don’t see
either of them about. I don’t know whether Mamie Williams is in her room
or not. I think it would be a good plan to see. By all means make as
many cozy corners as you please, dear, and the boards are of no use to
me.”

Celia departed to find her helpers, and Miss Hannah locked the door and
prayed for them before she went about darning some tablecloths.




                             CHAPTER XVII.


“Now, Harry, where are you going?” said Celia, with dismay in her voice,
as she ran down the stairs and saw that young man with his overcoat on
and his hat in his hand just opening the front door.

He started and looked guilty as she spoke. In truth, he had been sitting
in the parlor for an hour trying to keep himself in the house, and away
from an especially alluring evening the boys had held out as bait; and
one, too, which seemed, from their account of it, to be perfectly
harmless.

He hesitated and stammered out:

“Nowhere, I guess,” and then laughed and sat down in the hall chair. “Is
there anything I can do for you, Miss Murray? The fact is I don’t quite
know what to do with myself to-night, for some reason.”

Celia’s heart filled with pity for the poor lonely fellow and with
remorse that she had not sooner attempted to do something to cheer him
up.

“Oh, I’m so sorry,” she said, earnestly, with a true ring to her voice
which he recognized at once. “But if you are lonesome and really have
nothing pressing to do, why take off your coat and come and help me
carry out a scheme. I’m going to make a cozy corner in the parlor. In
fact, I think I’ll make two, one in the bay window and one over there by
the organ. Will you help? You’re such a good carpenter, you know, and
this parlor does look so bare and desolate.”

“All right, I’m with you,” answered the young man, taking off his
overcoat with alacrity. “Only tell me what to do. I don’t know the first
thing about cozy corners, but if you know as much as you did about
lamps, I’ll be willing to say they’ll be a success. Let’s have a
half-dozen of ’em if you say so. Now what’ll I do first?”

“Bring that lamp and come down into the cellar. Wait, I don’t know
whether you can do it alone, they are pretty heavy and there are a good
many. Perhaps Mr. Hartley or Mr. Osborn would help a minute in bringing
up the boards. I’ll show you what we want first, and then you can pick
out the right boards. You see I want a good firm seat here in the bay
window to fill the whole place to the edge of the window frames either
side, just a foot from the floor, so, and then I want another over here,
to reach from here to here, so wide, and the same height from the floor.
Here is my tape measure. Now you can pick out your lumber.” Celia moved
about the dull uninteresting parlor, furnishing it with gesture and
imagination, till the young carpenter was quite interested. He called
the two young men upstairs, who came willingly and helped for a few
minutes showing not a little interest and curiosity in the undertaking.
They all lingered with advice and offers to help, and when Celia had
seen the carpentry work well started, she ran upstairs and knocked at
the door of the two young girls.

“Come in,” drawled the voice of some one chewing, and after a moment’s
hesitation she entered.

Mamie Williams lay across the foot of the bed, the two pillows and a
comforter under her head, the gas turned as high as it would go, and a
paper-covered volume in her hand. She was chewing gum. When she saw that
it was Celia who had entered, her tone of indifference changed to one of
pleased surprise. She sat up quickly and hid her book beneath the
pillows. Then she put her hand up to straighten her hair.

“Why, is it you!” she exclaimed, and Celia knew that her aunt’s
conjecture that she was admired by this girl was true, from the evident
pleasure the visit gave. This unbent Celia still more, and she tried to
be winning. When Celia tried she was very winning indeed.

“We are having some fun downstairs fixing up that old barn of a parlor,”
she explained, still standing by the door, though her hostess had
slipped from the bed and cleared a chair from a pile of clothing thrown
upon it. “I thought maybe you would like to help. Is your friend here?”

“No, she ain’t, she’s gone out with a gentleman friend,” said Mamie,
with a conscious giggle. “It’s a wonder you found me in. I’m mostly out
when she is. Sit down, can’t you? I’m real glad you come up, I was
lonesome. The book I had wasn’t any account either. What did you say you
was doing?”

Celia essayed to explain and succeeded in interesting Mamie to the
extent that she hunted out her thimble from a mass of ribbons and
collars tumbled into a bureau drawer, and went downstairs to see what
was going on, though she confessed she was not much used to doing things
like that.

They went to work in good earnest. Celia had some printed burlap, which
she had brought home from the store one night to make curtains for an
improvised clothespress, in her room. It was cheap and there was plenty
of it. The clothespress could wait. Those cozy corners must be finished
to-night, at least as far as possible. She gave the tick of the cushions
to Mamie to run the seams, while she applied herself to sewing the
burlap cover for it. Meanwhile, the hammering and sawing and directing
went forward, and by half-past nine when Mr. Stafford opened the front
door and came in there were two very solid looking rough wooden shelves
a foot from the floor, in the parlor, one occupying the entire bay
window space in the front of the room, the other one being at the
further end of the room. To the sides of this Harry Knowles was just
nailing some more boards to serve as ends, under the supervision of the
other two young men, while Celia and Mamie were upon their knees in
front of the bay window tacking the dark blue burlap printed in a
heraldic design, in a pleated valance. A nearly completed cushion lay
beside them on the floor, but not tied as yet. Mr. Stafford, attracted
by the unusual noises, entered the room and stood behind them looking at
the work a moment. Then, as Celia turned from the valance and attempted
to thread a large needle with a cord and then vainly endeavored to pull
its short proportions through the thick cushion, which had been stuffed
with excelsior and a layer of cotton on the top, he said quietly:

“You need an upholsterer’s needle for that, Miss Murray. I think I have
one upstairs that we used in fixing up the pulpit chairs at the mission.
I’ll go and get it.”

Celia was pleased that he entered into the work and thanked him. As he
turned toward Harry, he said, “Knowles, why don’t you put springs in? It
would be twice as comfortable.”

“Springs!” said Harry jumping up and facing round. “Do you expect us to
turn into upholsterers the first night?” and he laughed good-naturedly.

“No, but indeed it isn’t a difficult job,” explained the minister, “you
just have to tie them down firmly. I’ll show you if you don’t mind
running out with me to that little upholsterer’s around the corner. I
think it’s open yet. It was when I came by. The people live over the
store and they don’t shut up shop early.”

“By all means, let us have springs,” answered Celia to Harry’s look of
enquiry, “I didn’t look for such luxury as that, but we will take what
grandeur we can get.” Her cheeks had grown red with excitement, and her
eyes were shining. The minister, as he turned to go on his
self-appointed errand, was reminded of the first evening he had come to
that house. Harry and Mr. Stafford were soon back with several sets of
springs and the three young men, with Celia demurely in the background,
took a lesson in putting in springs, which they found to be not such a
very difficult matter after all. The minister had not forgotten to get
some small dark blue cotton upholstery buttons when he was out, and
Mamie and Celia soon learned how to use the queer double pointed needle
and tie the cushion with the little buttons. Altogether it looked very
pretty, and quite like real upholsterer’s work when it was finished.

In spite of the proverbial “many hands” and “light work,” it was nearly
eleven o’clock when the two seats were finished, and a light frame work
over the seat in the back end of the parlor erected. Miss Hannah had
come down to send them all to bed, but found them in a state of childish
enthusiasm to see their work completed. Celia had remembered that she
had upstairs two or three pieces of plain and printed denim and some
turkey red calico. Mounted on the stepladder beside the canopy frame,
she deftly draped the rough wood, being materially assisted by Mr.
Stafford who seemed to understand what she wanted to do, and to be able
to drape a graceful fold of cloth, if he _was_ only a man, and that a
minister. He, by way of contribution, brought down a Chinese sword made
of coins which the Chinese use as a talisman, for the purpose of
frightening away evil spirits, and hung it above the drapery. This
roused the others to emulate his example. The university student thought
he knew where he could get a couple of Arabic spears to help out that
canopy drapery, and Harry Knowles declared he would hunt around and find
one of those dull old filigree bull’s-eye lanterns that hang by long
chains from the centre. Mamie said her contribution should be a couple
of sofa pillows, and Celia promised to make some more. Miss Burns,
coming in just then looking weary and worn, brightened as she came into
the parlor and exclaimed over the new furnishings, “They are
simply,—now—simply—_fine_—aren’t they, Miss Grant? Indeed they
_are_! What _wonderful_ taste and _skill_ has been exhibited here! I
declare it is _simply marvelous_! _Simply fine!_ Indeed—_indeed_—it
is!” she giggled wearily. She asked permission to contribute a pillow
also.

“Now we need a low bookcase running along that wall and turning that
corner,” said the minister, as they turned to go to their rooms. “Can’t
you manage that, Knowles?” and Celia’s eyes sparkled over the idea. The
minister evidently understood esthetics anyway. The bookcase would be a
great addition. She went upstairs so excited over her new work she could
hardly sleep. She had almost forgotten her three-cent protégée, till
Mamie squeezed her hand over the stair railing and said, “Good-night,
Miss Murray, I’ve enjoyed myself ever so much. And say, would you mind
coming into my room a few minutes to-morrow night? I want to ask you
some questions very particular.”

Celia promised readily enough, though the prospect was not a pleasant
one, but she had made up her mind to try to help this girl, so she might
as well accept the situation and the opportunity together.

But aunt Hannah sat up that night till nearly one o’clock, and looked
over the stair railing till she heard the night key click, and saw the
befeathered hat of Carrie Simmons as she came airily in.

“Poor child!” murmured the watcher, as she turned out the hall light and
went to bed, “something must be done! Out till one o’clock and with that
kind of a young man!”

The next morning she noticed that Carrie had dark rings under her eyes,
and was developing thin, sharp lines about her nose and mouth, which did
not add beauty to her pert, weak face.

The next evening as Celia started for Mamie Williams’ room, Carrie
having again departed with the aforementioned youth, aunt Hannah called
her. “Celia dear, two things,” she said, with her hand on Celia’s arm.
“Don’t forget to pray before you go, and if you get a chance mention
soap and water. Don’t forget that cleanliness is next to godliness.
Perhaps in this case it comes first.” Celia laughed and said, “All
right, auntie,” and went back to her room to take the first advice
given.

Reinforced by a turning of her heart to her heavenly Father for
guidance, she went to her unpleasant task, her mind more than half full
of the new bookcase and some other plans she had for the adornment of
the parlor. The minister seemed to have taken Harry Knowles away with
him immediately after dinner, so she had no one to help her carry out
any parlor schemes just at present, and she could not help being
disappointed that she must turn aside to another piece of work.

Mamie was evidently expecting her this time. She had given the room some
semblance of a clearing up: that is, she had picked up Carrie’s old
store dress from the floor where she left it, and tumbled everything
that was out of place on the bureau and table into a drawer, for the
confusion of some future hour of need.

She seemed to be in earnest, and plunged at once into her subject when
she had seated Celia.

“Say, I thought maybe you wouldn’t mind telling me how you do it. You
see I thought you wasn’t any more pretty than I, and you haven’t got
expensive clo’es, but you manage somehow to look awful stylish and
pretty in spite of it. I know it takes a knack, but don’t you think I
could learn? I’ve been trying ever since you came here to do my hair the
way you do, but I can’t make it act right. I thought maybe you wouldn’t
mind doing it a few times for me, to get me started, and perhaps you
could tell me what the difference is between you and me. I know it ain’t
very polite to ask you things like this, but I thought you was so kind
last night asking me to help that I’d just be bold and ask you. You
ain’t mad, are you?”

Celia ignored the doubtful compliments and tried to smile, albeit her
very soul shrank within her. What, handle the coarse greasy hair of that
girl who seemed actually dirty to her? How could she? Surely the Lord
did not require that sacrifice. Why had she undertaken this task anyway?
It was _dreadful_. She half rose from her chair, as she began to foresee
the magnitude of the possible proportions of this proposition. What
might she not be asked to do? Then she remembered whose she was and whom
she served, and sank back again in her chair, putting up a petition for
help to her heavenly Father.

                              “What is prayer?
                      ’Tis the telegraphic cord,
                      Holding converse with the Lord;
                      ’Tis the key of promise given
                      Turning in the lock of heaven.”




                             CHAPTER XVIII.


“Do you think I’m too homely to fix up?” anxiously asked Mamie, as her
visitor did not at once respond.

“Oh no, indeed!” said Celia laughing, “I was only trying to think how to
answer you, and it’s so funny for you to want to copy me. I have never
tried to be ‘pretty’ as you call it. I only tried to be clean and neat,
and have things look as nice as I could without spending much money. But
now that you’ve asked me, if you really want to know how you could
improve your appearance, in my eyes at least, I’ll try to tell you a few
things. What is it that troubles you most? We’ll begin with that.”

“Oh my sakes!” giggled Mamie. “There’s so many things. Well, my hands
and my feet. They’re so big, and in the way. My hands are red and rough
and bony, and my face is always breaking out in little ugly black
pimples, and my hair won’t get into any shape I want it to, and my teeth
aren’t pretty, and then of course my clothes, and I just _wish_ I could
walk across a room like you,” she finished with a sigh.

Celia laughed and began,

“Your hands,” she said, “let me see them.” She turned up the gas and
surveyed them critically a moment, while Mamie waited in breathless
anxiety comparing her red, beringed fingers to Celia’s small white ones.

“Well, if I were you I would take all those rings off first,” said
Celia, decidedly. “They look gaudy and out of place, except perhaps on a
woman in society, and even then I should prefer to see just one or two
at a time, and not a whole jewelry store at once.”

Mamie looked disappointed. She drew them off slowly. “I thought they
were pretty,” she said, the least bit of dismay in her voice. “Don’t you
like any rings?”

“Not for young girls,—unless they mean something. Have you any that
have tender associations?”

“Some,” simpered Mamie looking conscious.

Celia ignored or did not understand this answer. “Which one?” she asked.
“Did your mother, or father, or brother, or sister give it to you?”

Mamie blushed. “Well, yes, I have got one ma give me, but it isn’t any
of them. It’s a little plain gold thing, looks kind of out of style now.
I don’t wear it any more.”

“I’d wear that one,” said the oracle, “and put the others all away.
You’re too young to have rings given you to wear by strangers. Now about
training those hands, I can give you some little exercises that they
gave me when I was taking music lessons, which I think help the hands to
be graceful. First, if I were you, I would go into the bathroom and give
them a good washing in hot soap suds, finishing off with cold water.
That will make them more pliable. Have you a nail brush? You ought to
have one. There is nothing like it for making the nails look rosy. I
suppose you find great trouble in keeping them clean, working all day,
don’t you? I do. But a nail brush makes the work much easier. I would
cut the nails more in this shape if I were you, see?” and Celia held out
one seashell tipped hand to be inspected.

When the hands were duly scrubbed, Celia gave her a short lesson in
Delsarte, an exercise for each joint of the finger and hand. Mamie’s
eyes sparkled and she proved herself an apt pupil. “Now,” said Celia,
“practice that, but be sure you never do it where any one can see you.
It will have its effect on your movements in time, but never practice in
public. Don’t think about your hands. That’s the best way to do. If they
are clean they will take care of themselves, and the more you think
about them and think how awkward they are, the more awkward they become.
Did you never try making people stop staring at you by looking hard at
their feet in the street cars? Well, try it some time. It is very funny.
I have been annoyed once or twice by somebody staring at me till I was
very uncomfortable. I remembered what I had read somewhere, and looked
down at their feet as if I was very much interested in them. They very
soon took their eyes from me and began to draw their feet back out of
sight and to fidget around and wonder what was the matter with their
shoes.”

Mamie laughed and looked at her new teacher with admiration. She began
to think she had made a mistake in saying Celia was not pretty.

“Now the complexion,” began Celia again in a business-like tone. “Your
general health will affect that. You ought not to eat much fat or sweets
for one thing, and you ought to bathe all over every day and rub your
skin till it’s all in a glow. That will make a great difference in the
complexion. How often do you bathe?”

“Oh my!” gasped Mamie, “I do hate to take a bath. Why, ma used always to
scrub us children all around oncet a week, and I s’pose I’d ought to
keep that up, but sometimes I do skip a week, it’s so dreadful cold in
the morning.”

“Well, if I were you I would bathe every day, for a while anyway. You
don’t know what a lot of good it will do you, and after a while you will
get to love it. Once a week you ought to have a thorough wash with warm
water and plenty of soap, and finish off with a cold dash, and a good
hard rub, and then every morning take a sponge off in cool water and a
good rubbing. That you will find will make your complexion very
different. Then I would give the face some treatment of hot and cold
water. Wash it in water just as hot as you can stand it every morning
and then in very cold. That will make your cheeks have some color, too,
I think. As for your teeth, let me see them. Oh, Mamie, it’s too bad to
let such nice even teeth get into such a condition. They are hopelessly
black, and you can’t get them white yourself. Do you brush them every
day, after every meal?”

“My land, no!” exclaimed Mamie. “What an awful nuisance that would be! I
never had a tooth brush but once, and then Carrie used it to scrub the
ink off her fingers when she was going to the theatre.”

Celia could scarcely repress the exclamation of disgust that rose to her
lips on this announcement, but Mamie was luckily too interested in her
own words to hear.

“Don’t you think I could ever do anything with my teeth?”

“Why yes, you must go to a dentist at once and have them attended to.
They need a good cleaning, and while you are there you ought to have him
go over your teeth and put them in first-class order. It doesn’t pay to
let your teeth go before you are a woman yet. He will tell you how to
take care of them. You ought not to eat much candy or to chew gum. That
injures the teeth.”

“Oh!” said Mamie, in a sort of despair. “You don’t have much fun, do
you, if you try to do all them things? But I don’t mind, for I do want
to look pretty, an’ I’m willin’ for it all, if it’ll do any good.”

Celia’s pulses quickened, for she thought if this girl would do so much
for the outward adorning, perhaps she might be able some time to
persuade her to do as much for the beautiful inward adorning of a meek
and quiet spirit which is in the sight of God of great price.

“Then your hair,” went on Celia, “needs to be washed often. I would wash
it first with powdered borax in the water. It isn’t good to use borax
often, for it makes the hair so brittle it breaks, but it will take out
the extra oil now, and that is what you need. Then it will need to be
thoroughly rinsed, and dried and combed. After that you can do almost
anything you want to with it. I’ll let you watch me do mine once, and
then you will see how it is done. That is the best way to learn. And
then about your dress, why that is a long subject. You will need to take
a lot of time for that. You’ll have to decide things one at a time. One
rule I go by, in buying. I never buy a thing that is in the very extreme
of fashion, because for one reason it will look queer very soon, and for
another it is sure to be poor material, or else it is very expensive. It
is always best to get good material. The plainer things are the better,
you can be sure, as a general rule. Then you ought to study your
complexion and eyes and buy things to become you. You will excuse me, if
I mention the necktie you have on. I don’t think you ought ever to wear
that color. Cerise may be becoming to some people with dark eyes and a
very clear complexion, but it ought not to be worn by blue-eyed people
with light brown hair. Dark blue would be more becoming to you. Then
too, I think a necktie is an unbecoming thing on you, anyway. You would
look much better in a close, round collar.”

Mamie looked down at her cherished silk scarf, to be able to buy which
she had gone without new stockings for some time. Her mind was something
akin to the maiden’s about whom our grandmothers used to tell, who said:
“I ken wear my palm-leaf and go bare-footed, but I _must_ have a buzzom
pin.”

Celia’s zeal was perhaps on the eve of getting the better of her wisdom.
She was growing interested in making over this girl as her aunt was
interested in making over Mrs. Morris’ boarding-house, and she forgot
that there were probably a long line of prejudices to be overcome before
the girl would be willing to walk in the way laid out for her, even
though she had asked to be directed in that path. It would look thorny
to her at first.

“Mamie,” she said, seeing the downcast expression on the young girl’s
face, “don’t get discouraged with all these new things. You can’t do
every one of them right at first, but, do you know, I think it makes a
great difference when people try to be and look the best that is in
them. You must not think you are a homely looking girl. You are not. You
were meant to be a pretty one, and I think you can make yourself look
ever so much prettier, I do indeed. Now I wonder if you would be willing
to do something just to please me.”

“Why of course I would!” said Mamie, readily enough and brightening up
at the encouraging words. “What is it? You’ve been awful kind to me and
I sha’n’t forget it, Miss Murray,” she added.

“Well then, it is this. You see out in Cloverdale, where I used to live,
I belonged to a little society of girls. We were each pledged to read
one verse of the Bible every day, and to pray every day, and when some
of us left the home and the society, we each promised to try and get up
another band where we were going, even if we could get but one other
person to join it. Now I was wondering if you wouldn’t join it to start
my new circle? We called ourselves the Bible Band. I believe there are a
good many such bands all over the country. We have this little gold
badge. Isn’t it pretty?” and Celia held out a tiny scarf pin with a
pendant gold heart, on which were the letters engraved B. B. “If you
will join us, I’ll give you this pin of mine, and I can send and get
another.”

Mamie grew interested as soon as she saw the pin. Jewelry of all sorts
was attractive to her. It would be quite delightful to appear in the
store with a new pin on, engraved with mysterious letters, and let the
girls and the young men there try to guess what they meant. Of course
she didn’t need to tell them if she didn’t want to. She asked again what
would be required of her, though Mamie belonged to the class, from which
are derived so many untrue members of the Christian Endeavor societies,
and, sad to say, also of the church; that class who are eager and
willing to join anything, and care very little what obligations they
thus take upon themselves; as little as they care when they break these
solemn vows. To such, indeed, might apply the many and various arguments
against pledge taking, not because pledge taking is bad, but because the
pledgers themselves are not made to understand the solemnity of the
pledge they take. Mamie cared very little what pledge she took, so long
as the performing of it might be done in private and at her own
discretion. She did not stop to think long, but accepted the pledge card
and donned the pin with pride, thanking Celia.

“Though I ain’t much of a hand at prayin’, Miss Murray, I never could
think of anything to say when I was a little girl, and ma used to make
us say our prayers every Saturday night. I guess I could learn a prayer
and say the same one every time, if that would do. You write me out one,
can’t you? ’Course I’ll do it to please you, you’ve been so good to me,
and I’m awfully obliged for this pin. It’s a beauty, and won’t I have
fun to-morrow at the store with it? Say, I don’t mind telling you why I
want all this fixin’ up to be pretty, you know. You won’t tell Carrie,
will you? I wouldn’t have her know, for the first you’d see her settin’
up to the same thing. Why, you see it’s this way. There’s a new boss to
our store. The head of the firm’s going out to Chicago, and he’s put
this feller, Mr. Adams, Harold Adams his name is, in at the head. He’s
only just nineteen or twenty, though he made them think he was
twenty-one, but he’s dreadful smart. His father’s been at the head of a
three-cent store in Baltimore for a long time, and he kind of growed up
in the business. He’s handsome, too, and everybody likes him, and the
girls will just stand on their heads to please him, and you see he’s
been payin’ me attention for four weeks now, takin’ me to theatres, and
gettin’ me flowers and candy, and all the other girls was hoppin’ mad.
They’ve just done everything they could to get him to look at them, but
he never did till there come a new girl to the china teacup counter. She
has gold hair and I believe she paints her cheeks, and she’s awful
stylish, and has the littlest mite of a waist, and he’s just gone clean
crazy over her. He’s nice to me yet, but she gets half the flowers now,
and I want to get him back. You see, I don’t mind telling you I’m in
love with him myself, and of course I ain’t willin’ to just give him up
without tryin’, so I made up my mind if I could get to be good lookin’
an’ stylish, maybe I could do something.”

Before Celia had time to collect her thoughts, and say something in
response to this startling disclosure, there came a hurried knock at the
door, and Molly Poppleton’s strong voice demanded, “Is Miss Celia there?
Miss Hannah, she wants her right away bad. That old lady upstairs’s got
a fainting spell. She says to come right away.”

Celia dropped everything and ran. She wondered afterward if the heavenly
Father arranged that call to her for just that moment on purpose to
prevent her saying anything to Mamie, for she felt sure if she had
spoken then she would have expressed her mind in what might have proved,
for the sake of her influence on the girl, the wrong words.

                  “Blind unbelief is sure to err,
                    And scan his work in vain;
                  God is his own interpreter,
                    And he will make it plain.”




                              CHAPTER XIX.


Old Mrs. Belden was made comfortable at last. It appeared that she had
worked too hard for the last three weeks, sitting up far into the night
to finish an order. She was a knitter of fancy hoods, sacques, socks and
mittens. Miss Hannah, while she ministered to her, heard a feeble
account of the poor soul’s life. Her husband and her children were all
dead, except one boy who was a sailor, and who, perhaps, might be dead,
too, for she had not heard from him for over four years. She resorted to
the only thing she knew how to do to earn her living, and it had been
pretty hard work sometimes, though, perhaps, no harder than many another
woman had to do. She was very thankful for the good food which had come
in with the advent of Miss Grant. She murmured her gratitude in an
apologetic way for everything that was done for her, and said she did
not see why they made so much trouble, they might just as well have let
her slip quietly away, if it had been the Lord’s will. Her life wasn’t
worth much anyway, and she was only making a lot of trouble that would
all have to be done over again pretty soon, maybe. Miss Hannah and Celia
had looked about the room and resolved that there should be more
comforts there before another night, and when she was at last ready for
sleep, and they felt sure that all she needed to restore her to her
usual health was a good rest, they left her, with a promise from Molly
Poppleton, whose room was next to Mrs. Belden’s, that she would sleep
with one ear open and step in occasionally to see that she was all right
and give her anything she needed.

Celia sat down on the bed and rested her forehead on the footboard,
after she and her aunt had gone to their room for the night.

“Aunt Hannah,” she said, “I’m just discouraged. There are so many things
to worry about in the world I don’t see how I can keep from it.”

“Celia! Celia!” said aunt Hannah, laying her hand on the brown head bent
on the footboard, “is my little girl questioning the wisdom of God? You
sound like a little child, to-night, who thinks his parents cruel that
they will not give him fire to play with. Remember that God knows all,
and that he does all for good. It may be that old lady needs just the
kind of thing she is going through now to fit her for heaven. I do not
know whether she is getting ready for heaven or not. Maybe God had to
call her to himself by taking all her dear ones first, or maybe she is
set to be a help to some one else,—perhaps you. Does my little girl
doubt him because she cannot see and understand? Oh, Celia! You will
grieve him.”

“Well, auntie, I did not quite mean all that, of course, only I am so
tired and disheartened. I meant to try to plan a grill work for the
parlor to-night, and I couldn’t find Harry at all. I am afraid he has
gone out again with those dreadful fellows. What is the use in trying to
do anything with setbacks all the time?”

“But your heavenly Father had another plan for you to-night, and the
parlor can wait, you know. As for Harry, I think he is safe in his room
by this time. He went out with the minister, and while you were up with
Mrs. Belden they came in with a lot of boards and screws and a saw and
hammer and a pot of varnish, and they went to work in good earnest. The
other young men went down and helped, and in the morning I think you
will find something new in the parlor. Didn’t you smell new varnish?
They asked for you before they began, but I told them how you were
occupied and said I was sure you would want them to go ahead and not
wait for you.”

Celia sat up and smiled through her tears.

“Did they really, auntie? How nice! What did they make? A bookcase? I am
sure it must have been that, for Mr. Stafford spoke of it, and asked me
if I did not like the low kind running around the room. I am so glad.
And Harry stayed in! I was afraid he was with those awful young men
again.”

She brushed away the tears and began to take down her hair, when she
remembered another discouragement.

“Oh, aunt Hannah,” she said, “but you don’t know what an utter failure
my three-cent enterprise was,” and she gave a detailed account of her
interview with Mamie Williams.

Miss Grant listened intently, sometimes laughing with Celia, and
sometimes looking grave over possibilities of danger for the girl, which
perhaps the younger woman hardly understood. When she had finished, Miss
Grant’s face was very serious.

“Celia, dear, you have made a good beginning. Your first trial was by no
means a failure, and I do not believe you half understand in what great
need of help that young girl stands. She has revealed volumes in her few
frank sentences. Be careful that you keep her confidence, and ask to be
guided in what you shall say, that you may be both wise as a serpent and
harmless as a dove. That is one of the greatest gifts God gives to his
workers, and it needs to be carefully watched and tended daily to keep
it fit for work,—that mixture of wisdom and gentleness.”

“But, auntie,” said Celia, doubtfully, “do you believe I can ever
accomplish anything? What is the good of getting such a girl to read a
verse every day in the Bible? As likely as not, she will choose one
among the minor prophets, which won’t mean anything to her, and as for
praying, she said she did not know how. What good will it do her to
pray, ‘Now I lay me down to sleep’ for instance, every night, not
meaning a word of it, nor scarcely knowing what she is saying?”

“Remember, Celia, it is his work. You have not to do with the end of it,
nor are any results in your hand. Don’t you know he says, ‘Ye have not
chosen me, but _I_ have chosen _you_, and ordained you, that ye should
go and bring forth fruit, and that your fruit should _remain_: that
whatsoever ye shall ask of the Father in my name, he may give it you.’
After I read that verse I always feel comforted to do the work without
seeing the results, knowing that God has planned all that out from the
beginning, and all I have to do is to execute the little part of the
plan which he has entrusted to my hand. As for saying that such a girl
will not get any good out of the Bible, you talk as if you did not
believe in the Holy Spirit, Celia. Will he not guide her to the right
words that will help her? And do you not remember that the Bible says
about itself, that it is written so plainly that ‘he who runs may read’
and that the way of life is made so plain that the ‘wayfaring man,
though a fool, need not err therein’? Then even if her heart and her
lips do not know how to pray, if she truly tries to kneel and present
herself every day before her Maker, don’t you believe he can find ways
and means to speak to her heart and teach her lips the right phrases? It
is a great thing to have a habit of prayer, even though your heart is
not always in it, for you at least bring your body to the trysting-place
with God, and give him a little chance to call to the inattentive heart.
Don’t you know how Daniel had a habit three times a day of praying with
his face toward Jerusalem?”

“Oh yes, aunt Hannah, I see it all. You always have a Bible verse ready
for every one of my doubts and murmurs. I wish I had the Bible all
labeled and put away in the cabinets of my brain the way you have, ready
to put my hand on the verse I need at the right time,” interrupted
Celia, laughing, and putting her arms around aunt Hannah’s neck to kiss
her. “Come now, it’s late and you look tired. I’ll be good and go to bed
without fretting any more, and to-morrow I’ll try to think up more ways
of helping that feather-headed girl.”

Meantime, up in the third story room of the “three-cent” girls, quiet
and darkness reigned. Miss Simmons had come in a few moments before,
tired and cross. Her mind was wrought up by a play she had just
witnessed, and she had been quarreling with her escort about something
which she did not deign to explain to her roommate, so they had gone to
bed at last without the usual giggling confidences, and Mamie lay there
in the darkness thinking over her evening and the advice given her, and
wondering what the adorable Mr. Harold Adams would think of the changes
in her when she had been fully made over to suit her new guide. Suddenly
she sat straight up in bed with a jerk, which threw the clothes off Miss
Simmons’ shoulders, and exclaimed:

“My land alive! If I didn’t forget the very first night,” and with that
she flung herself out of bed, and striking a match, relit the gas.

“What in the world is the matter with you, Mame?” said Miss Simmons,
pulling the bed clothes up angrily. “I was fast asleep and you woke me
up! Turn that gas out and come back to bed! Come! We won’t be fit to get
up in the morning, if you keep rampaging round all night.”

But Mamie imperturbably proceeded with what she was doing. She tumbled
two great piles of paper-covered books over in the closet, searched
among a motley collection of boxes, old hats and odds and ends on the
closet shelf, and then began hunting in the bottom of her trunk. It was
some minutes before she succeeded in finding what she wanted, and by
that time Miss Simmons was asleep. Mamie drew forth from an entanglement
of soiled ribbons and worn-out garments a small, fine-print red Bible
with an old-fashioned gilt clasp. It was stained on one side and
blistered as if a tumbler of water had been left standing wet upon it.
Mamie remained seated on the floor beside her trunk while she turned
over the leaves rapidly, intent upon keeping the letter of her promise
in as short a time as possible, for the furnace fire was low for the
night and she was beginning to feel cold. She opened near the beginning
of the book and chanced upon a list of long, hard names which she could
not pronounce. Perhaps her conscience would have been eased as well by a
verse there as anywhere, but it was too much trouble for her
unaccustomed mind to pronounce the words to herself, so she opened again
at random toward the end, and letting her eye run down the page in
search of something attractive and brief, she was caught by this verse:

“And to her was granted that she should be arrayed in fine linen, clean
and white: for the fine linen is the righteousness of saints.”

“Well now, ain’t that funny!” she said to herself, as she paused to read
it over before she turned out the gas again. “That seems kind of like
her talk. Dressed in fine linen! It would be kind of nice and pretty,
and real stylish, too, if it was tailor-made. I saw a girl on Chestnut
street last summer in a tailor-made white linen that was awful pretty.
It sort of rustled as if there was silk underneath, and her hair was all
gold and fluffy under a big white hat with chiffon on it. She looked
real elegant. It would take an awful lot of washing though, to keep her
in fine linen ‘clean and white.’”

She glanced at the verse again with her hand outstretched to turn out
the gas, and read it over once more, and then got into bed. “For the
fine linen is the righteousness of the saints! Well, it does seem a sort
o’ saint-like dress, now that’s so, and come to think of it, Miss
Murray, she’s got a sort of a saint face. I knew it was something kind
o’ strikin’, and I couldn’t think what, ’cause you wouldn’t exactly call
her pretty, and yet she ain’t the other thing, and some folks—most
folks maybe—would like it better than to have her pretty. Maybe it’s
because she’s got the righteousness this talks about. She does look like
a saint, that’s certain. Anyway, she will when she’s as old as Miss
Grant. Miss Grant, now, she’s a saint sure! And she would look nice in a
fine linen dress all white, too. I wish she’d put one on some time, so I
could see. How funny it is to have the Bible talk about dress. I
supposed the Bible thought clo’es was wicked. I’m sure the Sunday-school
teachers always say you mustn’t think about ’em. Well, that’s a pretty
verse anyhow. I wonder who it was that had that fine linen dress granted
to her, and if she wore it all the time, that is, clean ones every day,
all fresh and crisp! My! I wish ’twas me! Wouldn’t I be happy though! I
guess this reading’s going to be real interesting, maybe. I never
thought there could be any verse in it like that. Most things I’ve read
before was about sinning and dying and heaven, and scarey things like
that. Anyhow, I’ve kept my promise. Why, no I haven’t, either!” she
exclaimed aloud, and suddenly bounced out of bed again, to the detriment
of her bed-fellow’s temper.

She knelt down beside the bed, and her thoughts paused a brief moment,
while she tried to put her mind in praying frame. She tried to think how
to pray aright. She wanted to feel the satisfaction of having performed
this duty that she had felt in her Bible reading. She must ask for
something. She was conscious of a vague wish in her heart that she were
good enough and had friends great enough that this that she had read of
might be granted to her, to be arrayed in spotless, neat apparel,
beautiful, and given by the love of some one who cared for her above
others. How to put such a thought into fitting phrase, or even if this
were done, whether it would be a proper wish to express in prayer she
did not know. At last she whispered, “Oh God—” and paused, and waited
and tried to collect some better words, and then murmured again, “Oh
God—” and then—“Amen.”

When she lay down to rest again, it was with a sense of awe upon her
which would not let her sleep for some time. She had been near to the
great God, and touched as it were the hem of his garment, with curious
perfunctory fingers, like a child who had been dared to do a certain
thing, and coming, curious, unthinking, heedless, had touched and
suddenly felt the power and greatness and beauty of that which he had
touched, and had stolen away ashamed.

Altogether Mamie Williams was not as satisfied with her first effort at
prayer as she had been with her Bible reading. But yet in heaven it was
recorded, “Behold, she prayeth!”




                              CHAPTER XX.


The next day was Sunday.

Celia had wakened early, in spite of the fact that she was up late the
night before. She lay thinking over the changes that had come into her
life, and wondering how things were going to work out. Somehow there
seemed a cloud over what she had been trying to do. She had not
accomplished much with Harry. She had kept him in the house a few
evenings, it is true, and interested him in a few good books, but
nothing really to much purpose after all. To be safe from all the
temptations that beset his path every day, he needed to be anchored on
the Rock of Christ. She did not feel that she knew how to help him in
that way, he was such a gay, bright fellow, so ready to laugh. She
thought of the minister and the influence he seemed to have over the
young man, and felt half indignant at him for not exercising it in a
religious way, instead of merely a personal one, and then she realized
that she knew nothing at all about what influences he was using, and
ought not to judge him. For aught she knew, he had spoken to him many
times. How unjust she had been! Then she remembered what her aunt had
told her about the improvements made last evening in the parlor, and
jumped up to dress and run down to see them. Aunt Hannah had already
completed her toilet and gone down to the kitchen to help Molly
Poppleton, and to direct the new waitress who had been in the house but
three days.

Celia was delighted with the bookcase. Somebody had an artistic eye and
constructive ability. The bookcase was exactly the right height, and
filled the long bare wall on one side of the room beautifully. It was
finished with a neat molding of natural wood, and the whole nicely
oiled. There were a few books piled on the floor beside it, waiting till
the shelves should be perfectly dry to receive them, evidently
contributions to the new case. She stooped to read their titles, and was
astonished and pleased to find among them several new books by best
authors, which she had been longing to read, but had as yet not seen.
They were nearly all in new bindings as if fresh from the bookstore,
though one or two had the name written inside in fine, strong
handwriting “Horace L. Stafford.”

Celia drew back, a slight flush creeping over her face. She was grateful
for the books thus loaned or donated. The newcomer was evidently bound
to be helpful, and seemed to know how to do it. Now if they could have a
few games under the lighted lamp on the table, perhaps some of the young
people might be kept in evenings. Would such things reach Mamie Williams
and her friend, she wondered? And she sighed and feared that Mamie was
too much interested in other things to be reached so simply. She
remembered that Mamie had been reading the other night. Perhaps some of
these delightful stories would reach her. There were one or two
religious books, small and daintily bound, which looked attractive.
Celia picked them up and turned the pages, her expressive face kindling
with a thought she read here and there. Then she went to the small cozy
corner by the organ and sat down. She looked about her at the few
changes they had made, and remembered the night when she had looked
around on that parlor waiting for the postman. How much difference a few
little things had made! She could see other changes that might be made
to improve matters, and she resolved to try them as soon as possible.
Then she sat down at the organ. She had never tried that whining
instrument, since she had been in the house. It had pained her some
times to hear it groaning and wheezing under the bold touch of the tenor
brakeman as he ground out an accompaniment to some of his solos. Celia
did not like a cabinet organ. She longed for a piano, but there was no
piano, and here was this organ. What could be made of it? Perhaps it
might be tuned and answer for singing occasionally. Certainly, if it was
to stay there and be used, it would conduce to her own comfort to have
it put in order. She touched the keys softly to see how bad it was, and
went on playing chords gently. She was not a finished musician, but she
had learned to play a little for the home pleasure, and now
instinctively her fingers sought out some of the old favorite tunes.

                   “Safely through another week,
                     God has brought us on our way,
                   Let us now a blessing seek,
                     Waiting in his courts to-day.”

Her conscience pricked her, as the words rang themselves over in her
mind. She had not been going to church very regularly since she came to
the city. She had wandered around from one church to another, feeling
forlorn and lonely at all, not going often enough to one place to become
noticed as a stranger and welcomed, even if the people had had the
disposition to welcome her. Since aunt Hannah had been there, she had
made an excuse to stay at home with her if she was not able to go out,
and at such times when her aunt could go, she had taken her to the
different churches near by in rotation, that she might choose where they
should go. The elder lady had not as yet made any choice, nor, indeed,
had she expressed her mind concerning the places of worship they had
visited. Celia thought of it now, and wished their dear old church from
Cloverdale could be transplanted bodily. It was so desolate to go among
strangers and not have any place or work in the church home. She sighed
and made up her mind that she must go more regularly and perhaps offer
to take a class in Sunday-school or something of the sort. Of course it
was not right to live this way; but her heart was not in her resolve.
She played on, not realizing what tune she had started till she began to
hum the words in a low sweet voice:

              “The day of rest once more comes round,
                A day to all believers dear;
              The silver trumpets seem to sound,
                That call the tribes of Israel near;
                      Ye people all,
                      Obey the call,
              And in Jehovah’s courts appear——”

She broke off suddenly and played a few stray chords. She knew that the
next verse began:

                  “Obedient to thy summons, Lord,
                    We to thy sanctuary come;”

It was strange that all the words were on that subject. She would choose
something else. She thought a moment, her fingers lingering on the keys.
Then she began to sing:

            “Father in thy mysterious presence kneeling,
              Fain would our souls feel all thy kindling love;
            For we are weak, and need some deep revealing
              Of trust, and strength, and calmness from above.”

She felt the beauty of the words and the depth of meaning, and sang with
her heart, each word as a prayer. Her voice grew fuller and sweeter as
she went on.

      “Lord! we have wandered forth through doubt and sorrow,
        And thou hast made each step an onward one;
      And we will ever trust each unknown morrow;
        Thou wilt sustain us till its work is done.”

She had not heard the step upon the stairs and did not know that some
one entered the parlor and sat down on the divan near by, until, as she
commenced the third verse, a rich, sweet tenor, full of cultivation and
feeling, joined with her in the words:

          “Now, Father! now in thy dear presence kneeling,
            Our spirits yearn to feel thy kindling love;
          Now make us strong; we need thy deep revealing
            Of trust, and strength, and calmness from above.”

Celia’s voice trembled at first, but the stronger one sustained the tune
and she kept on, the pink color stealing up her cheeks and to the tips
of her ears. If the other singer saw her embarrassment, he did not
notice it. When the last note died slowly away and Celia was wondering
what she should do and how she should get away from the room, he said
quite in a matter-of-fact voice, as if he and she were accustomed to
singing together early on Sabbath mornings: “Will you play ‘Lead Kindly
Light,’ please?” And she had played on, glad that she knew it well
enough to do so, and they sang together.

“Thank you!” he said simply, when the last verse was finished. “That has
helped me for the work that I have to do to-day. In fact that song
always helps me. Do you, sometimes, come to a place where you want to
look ahead and see whether things are coming out as you wish? Isn’t it
blessed to think he leads the way, and makes the gloom for our sakes
that we shall not fear for what is to come, while perhaps if we could
look and see the blessings—in disguise—sometimes we might turn and
flee. You belong to him, do you not, Miss Murray? I thought I could not
be mistaken. I want to thank you for this pleasant bit of morning
praise. It has been like home.”

Celia had raised her eyes in one swift glad glance of recognition of
their kindred discipleship, when he asked her if she was a Christian,
and had answered, low and earnestly, “Yes, I do,” feeling in her heart
how very wrong she had been in calling this man unspiritual. Her heart
longed to reach that high plane of trustful living where he seemed to
move. She lifted her eyes again and timidly asked:

“Do you think it is possible for every one to feel that perfect
assurance where they cannot see the way? I wish I knew how to trust that
way and not worry over things.”

“It is hard sometimes, isn’t it, to just lay down the burdens at the
Father’s feet and realize that we need not carry them? But isn’t it
strange that it is hard?” And he looked at her with that peculiarly
bright smile which she had noticed the first night he came to the house.
“One would think that we would be only too glad to get rid of the burden
and the worry, when he, so strong and willing offers to take it. Perhaps
that is one reason why I like that hymn. It seems to help me to remember
whose I am and who is my Saviour. I am prone to forget when I think, for
instance, of some dear one whom I see fading day by day and know cannot
be long upon this earth, that the night ever will be gone

            “‘And with the morn, those angel faces smile
            Which I have loved long since, and lost awhile!’”

A deep sadness had settled over his face, as he looked up to her and
repeated the lines of the hymn they had just sung, and her heart was
filled with pity for some sorrow she felt he was bearing. Instinctively
she remembered the sweet beautiful face in the velvet case, and while he
seemed set apart and sacred in her thought of his sorrow, she let a
shade of her old dignity creep back into her voice, which had fallen
from it for a few moments. The breakfast bell had sounded, and the
boarders were coming downstairs. With one accord the two rose and went
toward the dining-room, feeling that they did not care to have the quiet
confidences of the few moments they had spent together intruded upon or
misunderstood. Celia thanked Mr. Stafford for his words a little
stiffly, as one, as a matter of form, might thank any strange minister
for a good sermon, and perhaps the young man wondered a little at her
seemingly variable moods.

It was after breakfast, and the church bells were sending their various
calls to worship through the clear cold air of the city. Celia stood
ready dressed for church, waiting for her aunt in the front hall. Miss
Grant had been called back by Molly Poppleton, just as they were
starting out of the door, and Celia tapped her foot impatiently on the
hall oilcloth and wished aunt Hannah would hurry. Not that she was
anxious to go to church, but she wanted to get the duty done with and
come back, for Mr. Stafford had slipped a most inviting little book into
her hand, as he passed her in the upper hall after breakfast, saying
“Have you read Daniel Quorm? If not, it will interest you, perhaps. It
is along the line of our talk this morning, and it has helped me to
trust him where I couldn’t trace him.”

She had read a few pages while aunt Hannah tied her bonnet and put on
her gloves, and had already grown deeply interested in the quaint
phrases of Daniel in his story of his little maid. She wanted to get
back to it. She stilled her conscience when it pricked her for not
caring to go to church, by telling it that the book would probably do
her more good than a sermon in a strange church, but her conscience was
too well trained to let her forget that God had promised to meet her in
the church.

Some one was standing in the shadow of the parlor curtains, Celia did
not know who. She thought that perhaps it was the brakeman. He had
returned the night before, and was off duty for the day. She unfastened
the door and breathed in the clear sunny air with delight, then glanced
up the stairs to see if aunt Hannah was coming. But just then came Miss
Grant’s voice, as she leaned over the stair railing, and Celia saw that
her gloves were off and her bonnet untied again.

“Celia, don’t wait for me. I am not going this morning. I have made up
my mind my duty is with Mrs. Belden. She is feeling very despondent. Go
on without me. Isn’t there some one else you can go with?” she asked, as
she saw the look of dismay on Celia’s face and heard her exclaim, “Oh
auntie!”

Then the figure that had been standing in the shadow of the window
curtain in the parlor moved forward and Harry Knowles stepped out.

“Miss Murray, would _I_ do?” he asked humbly, “or—would you rather not
go with me?” There was a hesitancy and shamefacedness about him which
was not like his usual manner, and he seemed anxious to have her accept.
While Celia hesitated, Miss Grant said:—“Why, yes, Celia, that is very
nice. You and Mr. Knowles go together. I am so glad he is going,” and
then slipped away from the stairs pleased in her heart, both for Celia’s
sake that she would not be alone, and for the young man that he was
willing to go to the house of the Lord.

As Celia turned to go with him, she reflected that she had been wishing
he would go to church, or wishing she might say some word to help him,
and now he had himself opened the way by inviting her to go. She felt
reproached, that she had never invited him before. But Harry seemed
uncomfortable, and when he had closed the door, he stopped on the upper
step and asked again, “You are sure you are willing to go with me? You
aren’t afraid or anything?” and Celia looked up in surprise, and saw the
earnest, eager, shamed face and said, “Why surely, Harry, I am willing.
Why should I be afraid?”

“Well, I thought,—I was afraid you—after that night—you know—” he
said, growing red and grinding his heel into the stone on which he
stood, “I can’t forgive myself, Miss Murray, that’s all, and I thought
you didn’t like me asking you.” He looked up bravely through his
embarrassment with his sorry, boyish eyes asking forgiveness.

“Harry,” said Celia turning her clear, honest gaze full upon him, “I was
truly glad, and was only being ashamed myself because _I_ had not asked
_you_ before, for I have been wishing you would go to church, and—I
have been praying for you.”

She spoke the words low and embarrassedly, for she was not used to
talking much about such things to strangers, but the young man’s eyes
filled with moisture, and he said, “Thank you,” in such hearty tones
that she knew he meant it. Then he added, “So is the minister, and maybe
I’ll amount to something, after all.”

Celia was surprised to find that she suddenly felt a sense of
satisfaction in what he had told her about the minister. She did not
understand all her feelings to-day. She must sit down and analyze them
when she reached home.

“But where are we to go, Harry?” she asked, pausing on the sidewalk a
moment. “Have you any choice? I have not put my letter into any church
yet, though I ought to have done so before this.”

She tried to remember in her mind which of the churches she had attended
would be the most likely to help the young man, but could not remember
any of them definitely, and concluded that since she had been in the
city she had taken her body to the church and left her soul at home, or
wandering in fields of other thoughts than those presented for her
deliberation at the sanctuary.

Harry’s face grew eager again.

“Well, then, that’s nice. Maybe you wouldn’t mind going to hear Mr.
Stafford, because I’ve half promised him that I would come there this
morning, you see.”

“Oh, of course we will,” said Celia, wondering why it was she had never
thought to go and hear him before, and why it was that the thought of
hearing him preach had suddenly become so pleasant.

She wondered again as she listened to his opening prayer. Every word
seemed to be prayed for her, and to fit her needs exactly, and she
pulled herself up sharply when she found that she was actually imagining
that he remembered their talk before breakfast, and was praying thus for
her. The hymn just before the sermon was wonderful, and again she
reprimanded herself severely, for thinking he looked at her while he
read that last verse, so perfectly did it appeal to her need. He read it
exquisitely and tenderly, and as he reached the last line he looked at
her again, and it gave her a strange pleasure to feel those words spoken
so to her, even as if the Father himself had sent her an especial
message that morning, and by a noble messenger.

                “Take, my soul, thy full salvation!
                  Rise from sin, and fear, and care.
                Joy to find in every station
                  Something still to do or dare.
                Think what Spirit dwells within thee.
                  Think what Father’s smiles are thine!
                Think what Saviour died to win thee!
                  Child of heaven, shouldst thou repine?”




                              CHAPTER XXI.


That Sabbath afternoon was one of deep thought and soul searching to
Celia. The sermon she had heard, the hymns she had sung, the prayer she
had listened to, the book she had partly read, all seemed to bring her
the one thought, that of the possibility of a life beyond anything she
had known heretofore, a life whose every breath was trust, and whose joy
was unalloyed because there was no care in it to break the deep, sweet
peace. The longing for some change of this sort in her own heart did not
take her interest from the work she had just begun around her. Instead
it seemed to deepen her interest in all in the house, and to make her
heart throb anew with love to her Saviour.

With the little book in her hand which Mr. Stafford had loaned her she
passed through the hall that afternoon on some errand for her aunt, and
returning saw Harry Knowles hovering restlessly about the parlor. It
came to her that perhaps she might say something to help him, but what
could it be? She felt hardly ready yet without more thought and
preparation. She might do more harm than good. Following an impulse she
offered him the book to read awhile, and then went back to her room,
half sorry that she had deprived herself of the pleasure of finishing
it. However, she had read enough to remember, and there lay her Bible.
She took it up and read. Somehow the words seemed to fit all the other
circumstances of the day, and to help her on to the one great desire
that was growing deeper in her heart, that she might forget to fret and
worry and learn to trust Jesus entirely for all that was to come. She
read a chapter and part of another. The words seemed especially fresh
and new to her. She began to wonder if she had been giving her whole
mind to her Bible reading of late. Then suddenly from out the printed
page there came a command. It was not so very marked, not more than
other verses she had read, and yet it seemed to her to have a special
significance for her, and to remind her that there was a young girl of
nearly her own age upstairs, over whom she had been shown her own
influence, who was perhaps needing help from her at this very moment.
She felt that she must go, though she could scarcely tell why, and she
laid aside her Bible and knelt to ask God’s help before she went.

As she knocked at Mamie Williams’ door she wondered at herself for
coming, and how she was to explain her visit. She decided that if any
one answered she would say she had come to ask them to go out to church
with her that evening, though she had hardly made up her mind before
that to go herself. She felt much embarrassed at herself in that one
minute after she had knocked, and heartily wished herself back in her
own room. But she had not long to wait. The door was thrown open after a
moment of what sounded like scuffling inside, by Mamie herself, this
time without gum in her mouth, but with rather red cheeks and her hair
floating in wet strings down her back over a towel. Her face and hands
were a brilliant, tender pink, giving strong evidence of the severe
scrubbing Celia had recommended the night before. She instantly
recognized what it meant, and her heart sank that at her advice this
girl was spending her Sunday afternoon in such a way. Perhaps the angels
knew that by making herself sweet and clean, she was coming nearer to
the kingdom of God than she had ever yet been.

The other roommate occupied a comfortable lounging spot on the bed. Her
hair was tumbled and her dress loosened, and in her hand was a paper
covered book. Celia had opportunity afterward to observe that it was the
same one that Miss Williams had been reading the day before.

Miss Simmons did not rise from the bed, but she greeted the intruder
with a languid surprise, and withal a show of pleasure that made Celia
feel she was not unwelcome, and told her to sit down. She was munching
cheap candy from a box which lay beside her on the bed, and she held it
out at once to the guest saying:

“Sit down. Have some candy, do. I had it give to me last night.” This
with a significant giggle interpolated into her natural drawl. Then
looking at her roommate, she said, apologetically,

“You must excuse Mamie. She’s took an awful fit of cleanin’ up. I don’t
know what she’s getting ready for, but she’s made herself a sight. Her
nose’s as red’s a beet. Did you want something or did you just come in
to kill time?”

Celia accepted the chair, declining the candy as graciously as possible,
saying she seldom ate it, and made known her request that they would go
with her that evening to meeting. She bethought herself of the service
she had attended that morning, and that possibly it might interest these
two to go and hear the minister who lived under the same roof with them,
and urged that as an incentive, describing the pleasant room, the good
singing, and perfect friendliness she had met, with an enthusiasm that
surprised herself.

“I can’t go,” said Miss Simmons, promptly, “I’m expecting company.”
There was the same conscious drawing in of the breath when she said
this, evidently meant to express a certain and especial kind of company,
that Celia had noticed in Mamie’s talk the night before. It made her
heart sink with the utter uselessness of trying to work against such
odds, till she remembered her new half-formed resolves, not to look
ahead for results, but to do the work trusting the rest to God.

Mamie’s cheeks had grown redder, if that was possible. She was sitting
on the edge of a chair with the hair brush in her hand. She seemed a
trifle shy.

“It’s awful nice of you to ask us,” she said, “but I don’t know but
perhaps I’m going to have company, too. It wouldn’t do to be away,
though I ain’t just positive, you know.”

“Couldn’t you bring them along?” said Celia, promptly, as if it would be
the most natural thing in the world to do, though her heart misgave her
at the idea of taking the oily youth she had seen in the parlor waiting
for Miss Simmons not long before.

“Oh, no indeed!” snickered Miss Simmons, “he wouldn’t go a step. He
ain’t that kind. And besides he’d be mad, for he said he might be going
to bring another fellow along he wants me specially to meet. He wants to
see me very perticular to-night anyway, so I couldn’t think of going
out,” and Miss Simmons retired behind her book.

Mamie had meantime been puzzling over the problem of how to please
herself and her new object of adoration at the same time, and seemed to
have arrived at a solution.

“I don’t know but I _might_ go after all,” she said, slowly, looking
down at the toe of her shoe. “Say, Carrie, if he should come would you
be sure and tell him I had gone out with somebody _else_?—you could
tell him it was a _very special_ friend who had invited me, you know,
and he would think it was another fellah. That might have a good effect
on him, you know. I believe I’ll try it this time anyway. I’ll go, Miss
Murray, if you want it so much. It’s a good thing to get people jealous
once in a while, don’t you think? Say, was that you down in the parlor
singing this morning early? It was awful sweet! Who else was there? It
didn’t sound quite like Mr. Yates, but I didn’t know any of the others
sang. It wasn’t Harry Knowles, was it? He’s too young for you any way.
You don’t say it was the minister! My! He’s awful talented, ain’t he?
Wouldn’t it be romantic if it should turn out you was to marry him some
time? Did you ever know him before? I’ve heard of stories like that lots
of times.”

Celia’s cheeks rivaled Mamie’s in hue, and her anger had risen rapidly.
She did not dare trust herself to rebuke this girl, for her desire to do
her good was still strong. She quickly looked about for a turn to the
conversation.

“Are you fond of singing? Then come downstairs and let us sing now. I
think some of the others are down there. We can have a very pleasant
time, I’m sure. I have some Gospel song books. Put up your hair and
come.” She walked to the door trying to steady her fluttered nerves, and
still that queer beating of her heart, half indignation, half something
else which she did not understand, and which she did not wish to
countenance.

“My land!” said Mamie, beaming, “I’d come in a minute, only what’ll I do
with my hair? It’s about dry, but it’ll take me an hour to do it all up
after washing, it’s so tangled and slippery. Perhaps you will fix it for
me. Do, that’ll be nice. Then you can show me how to do it like yours.”

Celia was dismayed. She would scarcely have chosen Sunday afternoon for
a lesson in hair-dressing, but how could she refuse on that score, as
the request had been put in answer to one of her own? To handle another
person’s hair at any time was to her a sore trial. She shrank from
contact with any one except her nearest and dearest. But how was she to
refuse? How was she to get an influence over Mamie if she let her see
she was unwilling to do what she asked of her? For a minute her
repugnance of the coarse girl, with her coarse hair, red face and loud,
grating words was so intense that she almost yielded to her desire to
turn and flee from the room and shake the dust from her feet, and tell
her aunt Hannah to take her away from the horrible boarders and never
let her see any of them again. Then she gained control of herself, and
though her cheeks were still red at memory of the careless words of the
girl, she consented to undertake the hair; and even the deeply absorbed
Carrie on the bed, who had been furtively watching the stranger during
all, never suspected what a trial she had quietly taken upon herself.

Having undertaken the task, she did it well. She had a naturally
artistic eye and hand and there was some pleasure, after the dislike had
been overcome, in making Mamie’s hair look as she had often thought it
ought to look. Quickly and deftly she twisted it, smoothed it here and
there, and fastened it firmly, and after it was accomplished Mamie stood
and surveyed herself.

“It looks awful plain,” she said, hesitatingly, “and it makes me seem
queer, ’cause I ain’t used to it, but I guess I like it. Don’t you,
Carrie?”

“It looks real stylish,” answered that young woman, enviously, mentally
resolving to try her own that way as soon as the others had left the
room.

Celia went to wash her hands, with a heavy heart. She must certainly
have mistaken that voice which she thought called her to go to that
room. What had she accomplished but teaching the fashions this
afternoon? How was she ever to know whether a thing was a duty or not?
She went down to the parlor with her singing books, and found Mamie
there before her looking pretty and a trifle shy in consciousness of her
new coiffure. She was talking to the tenor brakeman who was evidently
lost in admiration of her charms. She went at once to the organ and
started the singing, but she found that the brakeman’s tenor was not
quite so pleasant as that which had blended with her own voice earlier
in the day. The other boarders heard the music, and one by one dropped
in, all joining in the words when they were familiar until even Miss
Burns was there. Mr. Stafford had come in also. The minister joined in
the singing, though he sat in a shaded corner of the room for the most
part and sang softly, as if he were weary. Celia found that her thoughts
kept wandering to him and wondering what was the matter, and she grew
exceedingly annoyed over this fact, as she remembered Mamie Williams’
careless words a little while before. She was glad when the tea bell
rang and called them from the organ.

The church party was larger than she had expected. Mamie had wheedled
Mr. Yates into being one of the number. She was the kind of girl who
always wants a young man along when she goes anywhere. The other three
young men joined the group also, perhaps at Harry’s solicitation, or it
might be out of interest in the minister who had been singing with them.

They were starting out of the door. Aunt Hannah was behind with Harry
Knowles. Miss Burns had volunteered to stay with Mrs. Belden during the
evening. Celia stepped down to the pavement beside Mamie and walked on.

“Say, he’s awful nice. I like him. I wish he _would_ marry you, ’cause I
like you both,” said romantic Mamie, in a confidential whisper.

“What do you mean? Who?” said Celia, startled, and having a vague idea
of the tenor brakeman.

“Why, Mr. Stafford, the minister!” said the other girl.

“You must never say anything like that again,” she said, in a suddenly
chilling tone which almost froze Mamie’s eager enthusiasm for a minute.
“It is utterly absurd and ridiculous.”

She wished afterward that she could have turned it off with a laugh, and
let the girl see that she had no notion of any such thing, without
making such a tragic thing of it, but indeed she had felt so annoyed at
the second bold intimacy of the girl, which seemed to her like the
handling and mixing up of sacred things by clumsy hands untaught and
unknowing what they did, that she had almost stopped in her walk and
gone back to the house. However, she managed to steady her voice and her
steps and keep on.

“Why?” asked Mamie, half timidly, “don’t you like him?”

“Certainly, I don’t dislike him. But neither of us have any idea of any
such thing. It is very annoying to have it suggested. He is simply a
boarder.” She said it freezingly.

“Oh,” said Mamie, in a frightened tone, “I didn’t mean any harm. I just
thought it would be nice, that was all.” After that she dropped behind
with Bob Yates who had come up, and Celia walked with aunt Hannah and
Harry Knowles.

“She’s an awful queer girl in some ways,” confided Mamie to her escort a
few minutes later. “I just said she and the minister would make a nice
match, and she got just as mad as a hornet. My! She scared me so I
didn’t know but I’d cry!” and then she giggled in a way Bob Yates much
admired.

Celia sat in the meeting too much annoyed to rally her spirits and enjoy
what was going on. She scarcely heard the hymns or realized the sermon.
The voice of the minister, cultured, earnest, tender, loving toward his
people, awakened in her the knowledge that she was more interested in
this man than she wanted to be. She did not wish to hear his voice and
like it, and his sermon she knew she would enjoy and therefore tormented
herself with her annoyance, so that she did not hear it, and saw between
the lines in her hymn book, ever and anon, a sweet pictured face in a
velvet frame. She called herself a fool, and wondered that there was
anything about a man whom she had so short a time ago not even heard of,
to make her feel so uncomfortable. Then she turned to watch Mamie’s
face, and her heart sank again as she reflected how useless it had been
to try to do anything for her. True, her hair was becoming and neatly
arranged, and the black eyes of the young man beside her were admiringly
turned toward her occasionally, but perhaps that was only another source
of harm to the poor girl. After all Celia’s resolves, her day seemed to
be ending most miserably.

How could she know that at that very moment the young girl beside her
was listening to the minister with undisguised amaze, as he read the
words of his text, “And to her was granted that she should be arrayed in
fine linen, clean and white: for the fine linen is the righteousness of
saints.” She did not know about the hurried getting out of bed to read
the promised verse the night before, nor how the verse itself had
impressed itself upon the young girl’s mind, perhaps the more because it
was about dress, the one great theme of all themes of interest to her
mind,—unless perhaps one might except those of love, courtship and
marriage. If Celia had been told all this, it might only have
discouraged her the more that the Bible itself meant no more to Mamie
than a fashion book might have done, and so it was a wise thing that
Celia could not see and know until all God’s plan was worked out to the
finish, and she was given eyes perfected through his teaching to
understand the whys and wherefores.

The sermon which followed was simplicity itself. If Celia had not been
so taken up with her own uneasy heart, she would have recognized the
skill of the preacher, as he plainly and simply drew the meaning from
what might have otherwise been to many minds before him an empty and
meaningless passage. Even the feather-brained Mamie was able to
understand and to carry away with her the few facts she had wished to
know when she first read the words, together with their deep spiritual
meaning. She had felt a pang of disappointment when she heard that this
incomparable person, this child of luxury here spoken of, was the
church, Christ’s bride, and she told herself, half enviously that she
had nothing to do with the verse at all, of course. But, immediately,
the preacher made it plain to every one in the house that he and she
individually did belong, ought to belong, by right were, members of that
church for whom Christ died, and that it was only through their own
wills that they deliberately put themselves outside its pale, that
really, to every one present, it had been granted as a privilege, and it
was their own fault that they did not accept and wear it. He spoke at
length of the difficulty of keeping such garments white and pure in the
midst of a world of work and constant contact with that which would
soil, how only the children of the rich could afford to dress in a color
which would so easily soil, and how only those who could go and have
such garments washed in the blood of the Lamb could keep them pure and
white. Then he talked about that righteousness of the saints until even
Bob Yates dropped his eyes from the earnest, eloquent face of the
speaker, and began to look into his own heart and wish that he might
some way be different, and Mamie’s cheeks glowed and her heart beat
fast. She had forgotten, for the time, Mr. Harold Adams, and even the
admiring glances of her escort to church that night. She even forgot the
new arrangement of her hair, and ceased to feel the back of her head, to
discover how perchance it might be affecting those who looked upon her
from the rear. She resolved, in some way, to discover for herself how
she might wear this fine linen, and when the closing hymn was announced,
she stood up with the others, and sang in a loud voice the words,
meaning them in her heart more than any words she had ever sung before.
She felt a strange, sweet thrill of longing, new and faint, but real, as
the hymn went on.

             “O Jesus Christ the righteous! live in me,
             That, when in glory I thy face shall see,
             Within the Father’s house, my glorious dress
             May be the garment of thy righteousness.”

Mamie felt for the first time in her life that night, that she had
really a strong determination to go to heaven when she died. The white
linen could be worn then, if not before. The minister had said it might
be worn now also. Well, perhaps——

Her heart was softened, and on the way home she confided the coincidence
of her verse the night before and the minister’s text to Mr. Yates, who
was deeply interested and impressed. Celia would have been surprised,
perhaps, if she could have heard the brakeman telling Mamie at the door
that she had helped him, that he wanted to be better than he had been
and he was glad she was that kind of a girl.

As for Celia, the minister himself had walked home with her. She hoped
that Mamie had not seen, and her cheeks burned red and her embarrassment
did not lessen during the entire walk. He asked her to help him in his
Sunday-school work, and she accepted the class he offered her, after
much hesitation, but she was stiff and unlike herself, and aunt Hannah
wondered greatly why Celia seemed so cold and uninterested in things.
She sighed as she went about preparing for the night, and wished that
Celia’s mother had lived; nobody could understand a girl like her own
mother, she thought. Then she knelt as she always did, and laid her care
at her Master’s feet, and rested with an unburdened heart for the next
day’s work.




                             CHAPTER XXII.


One morning, about eleven o’clock, Molly Poppleton was up in the
third-story hall attending to the rooms on that floor. The chambermaid
was not well, and Molly had been put back in her work a good deal, so
that it was late and she was in a hurry. She thumped the water pitchers
down hard, slammed the doors, and punched the pillows into shape with
extra vigor on this account, but, suddenly, in the midst of making up
the University student’s bed, she came to a sharp halt and straightened
up to listen. She was not mistaken. She certainly had heard sounds of
distress. They grew clearer now as she went to the hall door, and she
quickly located them. They were low, half-suppressed sobs, following
quickly upon one another, as though the weeper were in deep distress.
After listening, she marched down the hall, and without more ceremony
threw open the door of a room. There lay Mamie Williams across the foot
of her unmade bed crying bitterly and shaking with sobs. Molly Poppleton
was at all times a straightforward maiden, and she believed in coming to
the point at once; it was the way she had been brought up. So, without
apology for intruding into the young girl’s trouble, she demanded what
was the matter.

Mamie raised her head long enough to show a red nose and blurred eyes,
and to see who had come in without knocking. Then she went on crying
harder than ever.

Molly shut the door with a slam and said:

“For mercy’s sake, do tell me what’s the matter? Are you hurt? Do you
want a doctor? Or are some of your friends dead?”

Mamie shook her head and finally controlled herself sufficiently to sob
out:

“No, M-m-molly. It’s my heart! It’s broke!”

“Oh, well, if that’s all, you’ll get over it! They always do! I’ve been
there myself, and I know that state don’t last long. You better get up
and wash your face while I make the bed.” And Molly proceeded
energetically to throw open the windows and shake up the pillows.

“Oh Molly! You don’t know. You never was crossed in love!” wailed the
miserable girl, without stirring, and then she sobbed the harder.

Molly turned irately from the bureau where she had begun to dust.

“Crossed in fiddlesticks!” she said, sharply. “You’ll find you ain’t
near so hard hurt as you think for. And as for me, I’ve had my chances
in my time like other girls, and plenty of ’em at that, an’ I perferred
to live single. It’s much more independent. It’s my opinion you ain’t
old enough to be away from home anyway. You better go back to your ma if
you’ve got one.”

But as this only set Miss Mamie to crying the harder, the perplexed
Molly marched down to find Miss Grant and report the case.

“Miss Grant, you’re needed up there in that three-center room. That
silly thing is actin’ like a fool over some poor sickly fellow, that
couldn’t support her ef she got him, I s’pose. She says she’s been
crossed in love an’ her heart’s broke, an’ she’s cryin’ fer dear life.
It’s my opinion she better be crossed with a good spankin’, an’ I
wouldn’t feel sorry to be the one to give it to her neither.”

But the latter part of this sentiment was lost upon her hearer who had
already started with swift steps for the third story.

A moment later Mamie felt a cool hand on her hot forehead, and Miss
Grant stooped down and took her in her arms and kissed her. She was so
surprised to be kissed, that she stopped crying for a minute. Then the
sympathy of the eyes that met hers started her tears afresh, and she
buried her head in the motherly arms held out to her and cried like a
hurt child who had found a comforter. After she had cried a few minutes
and been soothed by the woman who seemed to have the gift of soothing
from above, as others have a gift for music or painting, she was able to
tell her poor little sad, commonplace story.

“It was Mr. Harold Adams at the store. And he was awful handsome. The
girls all thought so. I fell in love with him the first time I saw him.
Yes ma’am, he was the head clerk there, all this winter he had charge.
The owner went to Hew York and left him here to run the business. He was
awful smart, they said. He used to pay me lots of attention at first,
and he’s told me many a time he loved me better than any one else”—here
she broke into fresh sobs—“and it was only when that ugly girl with
bleached hair and a pretty face came, he got to going with her, and now
I’d planned a way to look nicer than her and get him back, and he’s been
real nice to me for a whole week—she was away—they all said she was
sick, but now it turns out she was getting ready to be married, and he’s
to be sent to have full charge of a three-cent store up in Ohio, and
they say she’s going along. The girls had it all ready to tell me this
morning when I went in to the store, and they just couldn’t laugh enough
at me, till I nearly sank through the floor. They was always jealous of
me. First one twitted me an’ then another, till I got so mad and felt so
bad I just come home. He’s a goin’ to marry her, they say, an’ it’s all
been no use after all, an’ oh, my heart’s just broke!”

It is commonly supposed that women who do not marry and have no children
cannot enter into the feelings of young people, and are not able to
sympathize with them. But God had somehow given this woman a sweet
insight into natures in distress, which helped her to be able to give
comfort wherever she went, to say the right word and do the right
action. She bent down now and kissed the tear-wet face.

“You’re awful kind,” moaned poor Mamie. “But you don’t know how it is
yourself. You ain’t never been crossed in love.”

A shadow of the passing of a great dark cloud, tipped with brilliant
light, went across Miss Grant’s face, leaving the reflection of the
light there, ere she spoke again.

“Listen! Mamie,” she said, and her voice was very sweet and tender, and
her eyes looked soft and dewy, as though she saw things beyond the range
of human vision, “I want to tell you a story all about myself.”

Yes, she actually went back to those dear, bright days so long ago, when
she had found a kindred spirit and had lived in a sweet elysium of hope,
and dreamed those rose-colored visions of youth. Some women would have
counted it a desecration to the memory of her dead hopes and sacred love
before the eyes of a vulgar girl who wept over a man a hundredfold more
vulgar; would have thought it an evidence of lack of good taste and
delicacy to do so. Not so this woman. Had she not sent swift petitions
to the throne as she came up the stairs asking for guidance? She felt in
her heart that this story of hers, which had never before passed her
lips to mortal ear, told here, might help this poor, friendless,
untaught girl: might, perhaps, lead her to see life in a different way,
and to begin to try to live it for the God above, instead of for her own
selfish pleasure. And she knew the man she had loved, who had been in
heaven these years, well enough to be certain he would be glad also to
have her tell the story, if it could in any wise help a soul to find
comfort. And so she told it, simply and eloquently. She even let herself
dwell on the tender passages, the little things that make such a story
beautiful in the eyes of a girl. She spoke about the flowers he had sent
her, the pretty, simple gowns she had worn that he admired, and the
ribbon he stooped and kissed, as it floated from her throat, that last
time he parted from her, saying she would soon be with him now to stay;
and how she treasured it yet.

Before she was half-way through the story, Mamie had dried her eyes and
sat up on the bed, her face expressing intense interest. She had
forgotten her own troubles in the trouble of another. Her tears, which
were dried on her own sorrows soon flowed silently for Miss Grant. She
wondered at that peaceful face, which shone bright even through the mist
that would gather in her eyes, as she told of the dark days when her
hopes were taken from her, and of the time when she wandered about
forlorn, until the Lord spoke to her and comforted her. When the story
was finished, Mamie found she could look up and talk. She seemed to have
risen above her recent grief. There was a longing for something in her
heart, she scarcely knew what.

“I always thought it would be an awful thing to be an old maid,” she
said, bluntly, “but if I could look like you, and be like you, I
wouldn’t mind it—not much!” There was a look of admiration on her face.
It was not much encouragement, but Miss Grant was not one who let her
work depend upon results. She went steadily on talking, cheering,
advising, drawing out the girl, until she had a pretty thorough
understanding of what her life had been hitherto. She did not wonder
that the heart seemed broken, nor that what seemed to the poor girl to
be the life love had been freely given to an unworthy object. What
better had been set before the girl? She had been untaught and unguided.
Before she left her, Mamie had confided to her the story of her Bible
reading and of all her thoughts about the garments of fine linen, and
this missionary of the Most High had sifted out from the chaff of
foolish talk and worldly longings the grain of earnest desire after
better things and found joy, the joy of encouragement in it. She even
knelt beside the girl with her arm about her waist, and prayed for her
as Mamie had never heard herself prayed for before, and then, instead of
sending her back to the atmosphere of selfish strivings and silly
thoughts of what should be noble things, she advised her to stay away
from the three-cent store, at least for that day, and come down in the
kitchen, as she had some work for her there which might take her mind
off her trouble for a little while.

It is true that Molly sniffed when she saw her come into the kitchen
with her red eyes washed and a white apron on, but Miss Grant wisely
sent Molly to work in another part of the house, and herself carefully
inducted the awkward novice into the mysteries of making some most
delectable cake, to be used in the celebration of Miss Burns’ birthday
that evening. It spoke well for Miss Grant’s ability to read human
nature, that she chose cake to teach Mamie. If it had been a lesson in
bread-making or how to cook potatoes, it is doubtful if the girl would
have been interested. Cake, now, somehow, seemed “sort of stylish,” and
belonged to the festive side of eating; therefore she enjoyed learning
how to make it nicely, and she came to the dinner-table that evening
beaming with satisfaction over the cake which she had iced and decorated
with smilax and candles herself. She told them all that she made the
cake, and it received much praise, especially from Bob Yates, who asked
for a second piece and said some low words of commendation that brought
a smile and a bright flush into the girl’s face, just as Molly passed
the ice cream which was also a part of the evening’s celebration.

“H’m!” said that worthy woman coming out into the kitchen the better to
converse with herself, “I thought so! She’s got over it sooner than most
of ’em. It generally takes over night at least just to let the glue dry,
but she must have used some lightnin’ stuff. Her heart ain’t more’n skin
deep anyway.”




                             CHAPTER XXIII.


The days that followed were filled with new things for Mamie Williams.
However shallow her hurt had been it was deep enough to make her shrink
decidedly from returning to the store. The young man whose charms had
fascinated her was not yet gone, and Miss Simmons brought word from day
to day that there had been delay in sending him away. The yellow haired
girl seemed to have returned to her place behind the candy counter.
After this report had gone on for about a week, Mamie suddenly
manifested a desire to return to her position, with the expressed hope
that she might still win her lover back, but Miss Hannah, feeling that
this might be the turning point in her life, had a long talk with her,
the result of which was that she appeared in the kitchen an hour after,
with red eyes, a meek air and a clean gingham apron and made herself
generally useful. Molly, who had kept herself informed of the state of
the case nodded approval and announced to Miss Grant at the first
opportunity that she didn’t know but that girl had some chance of
growing a little sense after all.

It is doubtful whether Mamie’s resolution would have outlasted the next
day, however, had not several things occurred to strengthen what Miss
Grant had said to her during that long earnest talk. The first was the
announcement that the charming Mr. Harold Adams had departed from the
city to parts unknown, taking with him a goodly portion of the profits
of the three-cent business, which he had, by a careful system of
bookkeeping, been laying up for himself against this day. Neither had
the yellow-haired girl shared in his booty. She seemed to be as happy as
ever, and as the days went by was reported to be “making up” to the new
head of the business, who had come to straighten out affairs.

Mamie, on the announcement of this news, betook herself to her room for
a whole morning, where she cried and was angry alternately, and from
whence she came out a wiser and a meeker maiden, quite ready to do what
Miss Grant should ask of her, and to look for another position. But that
lady was in no haste to urge the girl to apply for another position.
Life in such a store, as Mamie would be likely in her present stage of
development, to get into, was too dangerous and risky a thing for the
unformed girl, who seemed to be hesitating on the brink of better
things. After careful thought, and much discussion with Celia, Miss
Grant told Mamie that she would like it very much, if she would be
willing to help her for two or three weeks, with upstairs work, sweeping
and table setting, until she could find another second girl who suited
her. She told her she would give her what she had been paying to the
second girl who had just left, and that she would of course have her
board, so that she might be able to look about her leisurely for the
right place, and still lose nothing by being out of work. Mamie, after a
struggle with her pride, and reiterating many times to her roommate that
she only did this for a few days as a favor to Miss Grant, finally
accepted, and was somewhat surprised that she was not scoffed at by Miss
Simmons for “doing housework,” which to the minds of both girls had
always been menial service quite beneath them.

But it turned out that Miss Simmons had other things to think of than
Mamie Williams’ affairs. It was scarcely three weeks after Mamie had
left the three-cent store, when it was discovered that the said Miss
Simmons had “eloped” with the friend of the oily youth who had been
visiting her. Just what she had eloped from, as she had no friends or
kindred in the city who seemed in the least interested in her welfare,
it was perhaps hard to make out, but she left a note in Mamie’s Sunday
dress pocket stating that she had eloped, and bidding an affectionate
farewell. It was no more than was to have been expected, Miss Grant
thought afterward, as she turned over pile after pile of romantic,
third-class, sensational novels in the closet, after the departure of
the young girl, but she sighed and brushed away a tear, that she had not
been permitted to help this girl also. She had by this time some hopes
of Mamie. The affair of Miss Simmons, she feared, might perhaps upset
her, and excite her desire for some romance herself, but happily it
worked the other way, rather frightening her, and making her cling close
to Miss Grant, asking her advice daily and almost hourly. This effect
became still more salutary when it was learned some days after that the
young man with whom Miss Simmons had eloped had already a wife in
another state. During the passage of these events Mamie cried a good
deal, but there was growing in her face the shadow of a sweet
womanliness which gave promise of what might be in the future if all
things went well. She had not even the brakeman to brighten this hard
time for her, for he had been sent out West on some special work by one
of the heads of the road, and would not return for a month. Mamie
learned to efface herself somewhat, and gradually seemed to be
cultivating some of Celia’s quietness and repose of manner. Celia, on
her part, was much interested in the girl. She kept her in mind daily,
and was always trying to help her, and praying for her.

“I’m not sure, auntie, after all, but she may develop enough to become a
ribbon girl some time,” she said one night, when Mamie had left them.

Aunt Hannah smiled dreamily. She was beginning to have much hope of her
young protégée herself.

“Yes,” she said, with her far-away look in her eyes, “she may be fit for
the white linen dress some day. Who knows?”

“You mean the tailor-made one?” asked Cecil, mischievously.

“The heavenly-made one, anyway, dear. She told me to-night that she was
beginning to feel as if she really prayed like other people now.”

There were other influences at work also. Mr. Stafford was holding
meetings every night in the new chapel, and the boarders had as a family
adopted that church as their own. It was becoming a regular thing now
for every one who was able, to attend service morning and evening on
Sunday, and several of them had dropped in to the special meetings. Miss
Hannah, Celia, and Mamie Williams had been there every night. Harry
Knowles had joined the choir, and his friends rejoiced that at last all
his evenings were securely filled for him. His face was bright and
interested. He was enthusiastic in sounding the praises of Mr. Stafford,
and ready to do anything to help in the church work, though as yet he
did not seem to have made any move to number himself among the
Christians. Celia was deeply interested in a class of big boys who were
most of them beginning to attend the services. She kept herself in the
background with them as much as possible. No one could say of her that
she was trying to get the attention of the minister. She tried with all
her might to keep away from him, insomuch, sometimes, that he noticed it
and was puzzled and troubled. He sometimes sat with his eyes shaded by
his hand up in his room when he was weary with his work, and thought
about it. Did she dislike him? Or was there some one else who so filled
her life that she had no desire to have other friends? More and more her
sweet, womanly face, and her pleasant ways were making their impression
upon his mind. He began to confess it to himself by and by, and he
thought of what his friend Roger Houston had said about finding a wife
that night he had met him in search of a boarding-place. His heart told
him that there was more possibility of such a thing happening than he
would care to confess to his friend just yet. In fact, Mr. Houston had
visited Mr. Stafford several times, and once had remained to dinner with
him, since which time he had unreservedly gone over in favor of the new
boarding-house, declaring that the cooking was as good as they had at
his own home, though perhaps not quite so stylishly served. He had
laughed, it is true, at Bob Yates, who that evening favored the house
with one of his high-keyed solos, while Roger and Mr. Stafford tried to
talk in the latter’s room directly over the organ; and he had mimicked
Miss Burns’ laugh—for he was a born mimic—and had denominated Mamie
Williams and Carrie Simmons as “giggling kids,” but he admired Miss
Grant, and declared Celia to be artistic in the extreme. He kept talking
about her after they came upstairs. He was an artist by profession, and
he begged his friend to ask her to sit as a model for him, and was
surprised at the prompt way the suggestion was squelched. He asked if
Celia’s character was as fine as her face, and pondered much afterward
over the slow thoughtful answer of his host, “Yes, I think it is.” He
was so possessed of the idea of catching Celia’s expression on canvas
for a picture he had it in mind to paint, that he asked again as he was
leaving, “And you don’t think you can ask that girl to sit for me,
Horace? I like that style of face awfully, and I don’t know just where
else to turn for it.”

“I don’t think there _is_ another face anywhere just like hers,”
answered the minister slowly again.

“Now look here, Horace, you talk as if you were personally interested in
her. Don’t go so far as that, I beg of you. You ought to marry a rich
girl, for you never will allow yourself to get money any other way,
unless you fall dead in love with it. Well, I suppose I may ask her
myself. It won’t hurt my feelings, if she does refuse, you know. Where
can I find her?”

A firm line came around the minister’s mouth, as he said, decidedly,

“I would rather you would not do that, Roger. She is not that kind of a
girl.”

Afterward, the young artist remembered his friend’s face, and whistled
on his way home as he thought it over.

But though Mr. Stafford had watched Celia for several months now, had
seen her under varying and trying circumstances sometimes; had shown her
little attentions, which were the outcome of a frank talk he had within
himself, wherein he confessed a deep interest in her, she still held
aloof from him. Miss Grant had given up trying to make it out. Celia was
too deep for her.

Meantime Bob Yates came home from the West. He had been working hard and
was glad to get back again. He had been promoted to an engineer’s
position, and was off duty every evening now. He seemed much struck with
the change in Mamie Williams. Miss Grant noticed it the first evening at
dinner. There was a deference about his manner when he addressed her
that was new. She noticed also its reflex influence on Mamie. Had she
taken a lesson from Celia’s reserve, or were the influences of prayer
and daily life about her, and her new hopes and resolves making the
change? Miss Grant wondered. Mamie flushed a little, but she drooped her
eyes modestly, and was quite unobtrusive during the entire meal, a thing
so unlike the old Mamie Williams that the contrast was marked. Bob Yates
admired it evidently, for he cast many glances across the table at her,
and his own loud, jolly voice seemed somewhat toned down, in harmony.

Celia passed through the hall behind them after dinner and heard Mamie
shyly declining an invitation to the theatre. “I’d like awful well to
go, but we all go to meetin’ every night now,” she was saying. “I
promised in the meeting last night I’d bring somebody along to-night and
I don’t just like to break my promise. Mebbe you’d just as soon go to
meetin’ as the theatre to-night, then I’d have somebody to take to keep
my promise with. The minister’s awful good, and the singin’ is fine.
They’d like your voice in the choir, I know.”

And so Bob Yates willingly gave up the theatre to go to meeting. He was
not greatly concerned where he took his amusement. The theatre had no
especial attraction for him, but he had thought of it because Mamie had
once told him she would rather go to the theatre than anywhere else in
the world. In fact, the prospect of a “good sing” was rather more
enticing in itself than sitting still and listening to the singing of
other people.

That night the minister was very much in earnest. He preached a soul
searching sermon. Some of Celia’s boys arose, when at the close of the
sermon the invitation was given for all who would like to belong to
Christ to stand with those who were Christians during the singing of a
hymn. Mamie sat quite still, her cheeks pink and her eyes downcast
during the singing of the first verse and part of the second. She held
one side of the hymn book with Bob Yates and her hand trembled a little.
He was singing with his usual fervor the deep, heart-stirring words, but
Mamie did not sing. Just as the second verse was nearly finished, she
suddenly rose with a jerk and an embarrassed countenance, leaving the
singing book in the hands of the man by her side. He looked up
astonished, and went on singing, but not quite so loud as before, and
his words seemed to be getting mixed up. He fidgeted on his chair, and
when they began to sing the next verse, he arose also and stood beside
Mamie, offering her again the book. She took it, looking down, her heart
fluttering gladly that he had arisen too, and kept her company, and so
they stood until the benediction was pronounced.

“Say,” said Mamie, softly, when they had walked half of the way home in
an embarrassed silence, “what did you mean by that? Did you mean what
the minister said? What made you do it?”

“Mean it? ’Course I did!” answered Bob, heartily. “My mother used to be
a good woman, an’ I’ve always meant to turn that way some time myself.
The first time I ever heard Mr. Stafford, I made out he was more’n
half-way right, an’ to-night I thought so again. I don’t know as I
should ’a’ said so out’n out fer folks to see, ef you hadn’t, but I
calculated I wanted to be on that side ef you was, so I stood up. Why?”

“Well, I didn’t know,” said Mamie, embarrassedly, “I was afraid mebbe
you just did it out o’ politeness. But I’m real glad you meant it.”

“Are you? Sure?” He looked at her searchingly by the light of the next
street lamp, and then added, “Well, I don’t mind tellin’ you ’twas you
that did it. That what you said about wearin’ a white dress got me to
thinkin’. You seem most’s if you was wearin’ it yourself since I come
home. I didn’t know but ’twas my ’magination, but when I see you get up
in meetin’, I knew it was that there white dress in the Bible you was
wearin’. I mostly made up my mind while I was out to Ohio, I wanted to
be fit to walk along side o’ you.”

Mamie’s heart fairly stood still with a joy she had not known before and
only half understood. It was the joy of having helped another immortal
soul to find the Light.

“I’m only just startin’ myself,” she murmured low. “I ain’t half fit for
that white dress yet, but I’m goin’ to try, an’ I’m awful glad you think
I helped you.”

“Well, then, let’s start out together, and mebbe we can help each
other,” he said, and she murmured with downcast eyes, “All right,” as he
grasped her hand in a hearty clasp, and then helped her up the steps
into the house.

Other young men had, on occasion, clasped Mamie’s hand in more or less
hearty grasp on the way home from places of amusement, but no hand ever
touched in her the chord of such true, healthful, honest friendship, and
purpose to do right. She felt as though she had been uplifted in some
way and yet she knew not how nor why.

A little later Harry Knowles sat in Miss Grant’s little private
sitting-room, his head leaning on his hand, his whole attitude
indicative of deep thought.

“I tell you, Miss Grant,” he had been saying, “it was that three-cent
girl. When I saw her stand up there all by herself, right in the middle
of a hymn, too, when no one else was rising, it made me ashamed. Here
was I who had been brought up to pray and read the Bible and know how to
be good, and had a good mother, sitting still; and that girl, who never
had any bringing up to amount to much I guess, _coming_, right away as
soon as she was asked. I can’t stand it any longer, and I wanted to talk
to somebody about it, so I came to you. I knew you would help me, and it
would seem some like having mother to tell it to. I’ve made up my mind
to be a Christian. Yes, I’ll tell the minister by and by, but I wanted
to talk to you first, and he was busy anyway. But I don’t know as I’d
ever have done it, if it hadn’t been for Mamie Williams to-night.”

Verily the mysteries of influence in this world are great, and past
understanding, and we cannot tell if our actions may not affect the
eternal welfare of some one whom we have never seen.

Certainly, Mamie Williams, as she sat reading her Bible that night, did
not dream that she had helped to bring Harry Knowles to Christ.

               “Hast thou not garnered many fruits
         Of other’s sowing, whom thou knowest not?
         Canst tell how many struggles, sufferings, tears,
         All unrecorded, unremembered all,
         Have gone to build up what thou hast of good?”




                             CHAPTER XXIV.


Celia Murray had gone to her room and locked the door. It was just after
church, and aunt Hannah was busy in the kitchen. It was the only time
during the day when she might hope to have entire possession
undisturbed, of the room which she shared with her aunt. She could not
remember a time in her life before, when she would have cared whether
her aunt came in upon her, or came to the door and found it locked, or
not, but this time she did. She wanted to be entirely alone and face her
own heart.

The winter had passed by on rapid feet, and they were well on into the
spring. The meetings which had been held in the little chapel had
continued for several weeks, and during that time Harry Knowles and
Mamie Williams and Bob Yates had professed publicly their faith in Jesus
Christ. The University student had taken his church letter out of its
hiding-place in his trunk and put it into Mr. Stafford’s church, and the
school-teacher had sent to his far-away home for his and both were
working hard for the salvation of others. Family worship had been
established daily in the boarding-house, not in the morning, because the
coming and going of the boarders was at such different hours that it
would scarcely have been possible to get them all together, but in the
early evening, just after the six o’clock dinner, while they still sat
about the table. No one was obliged to stay, but all chose to, unless
called away by something urgent. Mr. Stafford conducted it, and read a
very few verses and prayed. Once or twice, when he had been absent for a
day, Miss Grant had read part of a chapter, and asked Harry Knowles
once, and once the brakeman to pray, and they had each done so;
stumblingly and with few words, it is true, but Miss Hannah had been
glad and gone about her daily work feeling joy at the place in which the
Lord had set her.

They had grown to be a very pleasant family, in spite of the various
elements of character and up-bringing which they represented. They
talked about their abiding-place as HOME, and each one felt it to be
that in the true sense of the word. Miss Grant had taken care to observe
each birthday with some little unusual festivity in the way of eatables,
and at Christmas and other holidays they made merry enough to forget,
most of them, that they were away from their own kindred.

Mr. Stafford had grown to be a part of the household so fully that it
would have brought dismay to each one if there had been a thought of his
leaving. Even Celia had unbent, and he and she had become good comrades
in a way, though there was always a dignified barrier which Celia kept
up, which prevented his showing her any of the ordinary attentions which
young men like to show to the young women whom they admire. Having
quieted her conscience by keeping up this wall of conventionality and
excusing herself from anything of a social nature which he offered her,
she shut her eyes to consequences and enjoyed his presence in the house.
How could she do otherwise? She read the books he loaned her, and
conversed about them with him afterward, and she visited the poor and
sick for him sometimes and took them little delicacies. There had been
times, it is true, when it troubled her that she let herself enjoy his
society as much as she did, but she had been learning during the winter
months to put this aside and think no more about it. Occasionally she
prayed to be delivered from a trouble which she sometimes saw hovering
like a shadowy cloud over her own life, and looking at aunt Hannah
resolved to trust the Lord to make her what he would have her to be,
even if it must be in spite of sorrow, as he had done with her aunt. But
now a time had come when Celia must face her heart and understand
herself. If it was to be that she must come out of the ordeal bowed in
spirit, then she must face it and accept it, but she must understand
herself now.

It had come to a sudden crisis in this way.

Mr. Stafford had been away for nearly two weeks. A telegram had come to
him, when Miss Grant was out. Molly had taken it up to him and a little
while afterward had been surprised to see him standing in the kitchen
door, his grip and umbrella in hand, and a drawn, anxious look upon his
face. He told Molly to tell Miss Grant he had been called away by
tidings of sudden illness and did not know how long he would be gone.
They had heard nothing from him until Saturday evening of that week,
when his friend Roger Houston had called to get some church notices from
Mr. Stafford’s room to hand to the minister who was to supply the pulpit
the next day.

It was Celia who opened the door for him and showed him to the second
story front room. With a possible view to prosecuting his petition that
she would give him a sitting some time, he lingered a moment.

“It is very sad indeed,” he remarked to Celia, as though she knew all
about the matter. “You knew there was no hope of her life? Oh, haven’t
you heard? Well, I suppose Stafford has had his hands too full of other
things to think of writing. He gave me no particulars, only said all
hope was gone and she could linger but a few days longer at most. He
asked me to get this man to preach, and arrange everything for him. It
will be very hard for him, he depended upon her so much. There was a
peculiarly close relationship between them. He never missed writing to
her regularly and some of her letters were wonderful. He read bits of
them to me once or twice. She was a wonderful character. He will miss
her immeasurably.”

Then Mr. Houston looked up from the papers he had selected from the
minister’s table, to the face of the girl who stood silent in the
doorway. He was wondering whether he dared venture to ask her to let him
sketch her face some time, but when he looked at her he remembered his
friend’s words, “She is not that kind of a girl,” and concluded that his
friend had been right, and it would be better not to ask her this time.
He wondered what it was about her that made it seem impossible for him
to speak to her about it, as he would to many another pretty girl just
as nice and refined as she was. He fancied as he looked again that she
was white about the mouth, but, of course, that must have been all his
fancy.

It was not until late the next Saturday night, after all the house had
retired, that Horace Stafford returned to Philadelphia, and letting
himself quietly in with his latchkey, went to his room. They did not
know he had returned the next morning at breakfast time, for one and
another were wondering who would preach, and saying they wished their
own minister was back, that they did not know whether they cared to go
to church or not, and all those other things people will say when they
love a minister, just as if he was their God, that they went to church
to worship him, and when he was absent they had no object for worship.
He had called to Molly, as she passed through the hall early in the
morning, and asked her for a cup of coffee, and told her not to mind if
he did not come to breakfast, as he needed all his time for preparation,
having been away so long. He had gone to church early, while those who
were going out were dressing, so that it was not until she was seated in
church and saw the little study door open, and the minister walk out and
into the pulpit, that Celia knew that Horace Stafford was back with them
again.

She had gone through many changes of feeling since the night when Roger
Houston had spoken those few commonplace words to her. She had not asked
him then what he meant, nor who it was who was lying so low, who was so
dear to Mr. Stafford. Instinctively she knew. It was the young woman of
the pictured face, so sweet and lovely, within that velvet frame.
Something had arisen in her throat while she listened, that froze the
words she would have spoken, an expression of sympathy for him, and her
heart was filled with conflicting emotions. She had dreaded Mr.
Stafford’s return. It was as if she had had her convictions verified
now, and knowing his heart was engaged she wished to put him entirely
from her thoughts. It seemed impossible though, for constantly the
surmises would come up among the boarders, why Mr. Stafford was away,
when he would return, etc. She obliged herself to repeat a few of Mr.
Houston’s sentences, a very few it is true, so few that the boarders
were left in doubt as to whether the one who was lying so low and
keeping the minister away was man, woman or child, and when Miss Burns
asked if she knew whether it was one of the family, his mother, perhaps,
Celia answered briefly, “He did not say,” and then wondered if she had
done wrong in not telling what she was so certain of, though she
silenced her conscience by saying that Mr. Stafford might not care to
have them know he was engaged at all. Then Celia had tried to fill the
week with earnest hard work. She had succeeded in persuading Dobson &
Co. to let her induct Mamie Williams into the ribbon business, with a
view to possibly succeeding her sometime in the future, and she found
that she was able to keep busy. Mamie was a tractable enough pupil, and
growing quick to appreciate the fine distinctions in manner and actions
which Celia strove to inculcate. But there was still room for
improvement, and Celia worked early and late at her chosen task,
moulding the young woman’s character as carefully and eagerly as though
she had been an artist making a model for some marvelous statue.

“When you get her done, Celia dear, I’m afraid she will be too good for
the engineer, and I can see he wants her,” said Miss Hannah, with a
quiet smile.

“Well, that’s all right, auntie dear,” said Celia, with a thoughtful
sigh. “He’ll make her a good husband, and I don’t believe she’ll be too
good for him. It seems to me her influence on him has been wonderful. He
seems to change as fast as she does. I never would have dreamed it last
fall.”

“I thought so, dear. Do you remember the talk we had about him some time
ago? There is more good in most people than we suspect. You have to live
with them awhile to find it out,” said Miss Grant.

“You mean _you_ have to live with them, auntie, and _I_ have to live
with _you_ to find out about them. I never would have found all these
boarders out in the world, if you hadn’t been here with your ‘saint’s
eyes’ to read them.”

Miss Hannah smiled, but she watched Celia furtively and wished that she
could read _her_, and understand what made the little cloud which seemed
to settle down upon her usually bright girl and make her heavy hearted
these days.

But to go back to church. Celia’s heart throbbed painfully when she saw
the minister walk into the pulpit. She knew by his face that his dear
one was dead. It was not that his face wore a look of bitter grief, it
was rather one of chastened exaltation. He preached a sermon about
heaven that morning that seemed as though it had been written by one who
had recently been very near to the portals, seen them open and caught
glimpses of friends, and of Jesus within. Celia forgot her heart throbs
and listened, forgetting, too, for the time who was preaching, in the
absorption of the words he spoke. She had had a struggle to keep back
the tears during the closing hymn, when they sang;

           “And with the morn those angels’ faces smile,
           Which I have loved long since, and lost awhile.”

She knew why Mr. Stafford had selected it. He sat during the singing
with shaded brow and bowed head. Celia could not sing. She felt as if
she were choking. She turned as soon as the benediction was pronounced
and the solemn hush following it broken, to hide her tears by searching
for her umbrella which had rolled beneath the seat. When she rose again
and turned around, the minister was standing in the aisle beside her. He
put out his hand and clasped hers, and a light of joy lit up his face
which looked pale and worn, as he said, “I am so glad to see you again.”

They were commonplace words. He might have used them to any member of
his congregation; yes, and with the same tone and look too, perhaps, she
told herself as she hurried excitedly homeward, but they sent a thrill
of mingled joy and sorrow through the young girl which she did not
understand and could not control. One minute she was fiercely glad, and
the next minute she was plunged in a whirl of shame and despair that it
had affected her so. And now she was locked into her room. She took off
her hat and coat and sat down, but she could not think. She could only
feel the joy, and the certainty that it was not hers. She tried to face
herself and shame herself with saying plainly to her heart, “Celia
Murray, you have fallen in love with Mr. Stafford. Yes, and you did it
when you knew he belonged to another woman. Yes, you knew it well
enough, though you wanted to pretend that maybe it was not so, because
no one had told you so. But now you love him and he _does not love you_!
He has just buried his heart, and you know you would not consider him
the noble gentleman you think he is, if he should forget that love that
was ‘so peculiarly close in its relationship.’ And you love him in the
face of that! Aren’t you ashamed! He does not love you, and he never
will, and you must not _let_ him, and oh—_what_ shall I do?”——

The poor girl threw herself upon her knees and begged for forgiveness
and help. She felt she had done wrong to let her heart grow interested
so easily. She tried to remember some of God’s gracious promises for
help, and to remember that he would bear her trouble for her, but her
head seemed in a whirl of excitement and she could not think
connectedly. She heard the dinner bell ring, and she rose and bathed her
face, but decided she would not go down. She wanted to be by herself.
Molly came up pretty soon and asked what was the matter. She told Molly
to tell aunt Hannah she had a headache, and would not come down now, and
then she bathed her throbbing temples and lay down to try and grow calm
before aunt Hannah should come as she felt sure she would.

Wise aunt Hannah! She knew something was amiss! She had not watched her
girl in vain. She had seen the start and the change of color when the
minister came into the pulpit and again when he took her hand; she had
seen other things during the months which had passed. Just what the
trouble was she did not understand, and she would not ask Celia yet. If
Celia needed counsel, she felt certain she would confide in her sooner
or later. In the meantime she could pray.

Miss Hannah did not go up to her room for some time. Instead, she
arranged a dainty tray with a tempting little lunch and a fragrant cup
of tea. Under the corner of the napkin she had slipped a little note
which was merely a scrap of poetry with the penciled words above it,
“Dear child;” written hastily. It read:

    “Dear child:

              “‘God’s plans for thee are graciously unfolding,
                And leaf by leaf they blossom perfectly,
              As yon fair rose from its soft enfolding,
                In marvelous beauty opens fragrantly.
              Oh, wait in patience for thy dear Lord’s coming,
                For sure deliverance he’ll bring to thee;
              Then, how thou shalt rejoice at the fair dawning
                Of that sweet morn which ends thy long captivity.’”

Then she laid beside it a lovely rosebud which Harry Knowles had brought
her the night before, and sent the tray up by Molly. She herself went to
the third story, and read to Mrs. Belden nearly all the afternoon.




                              CHAPTER XXV.


Celia aroused herself from her unhappiness in time to hurry to her
Sunday-school class. She purposely went late that she might not be
obliged to walk with any one, and she intended to hurry home before any
of the others from their house had left the chapel, but it so happened
that one of her scholars had a sad tale to tell her of trouble and need,
and she was obliged to linger and get the particulars. There was an
address to be taken down and several items of information she would need
in helping him to find work. When this was done and she glanced
hurriedly round to see if the others were gone, she saw that one of her
boys was lingering with an embarrassed expression, half smiling, half
doubtful, as though he might wish to speak a word with her. Something
told her that this heart was ready for a quiet personal word and here
was the time. The other boarders were gone, the minister with hat in
hand was standing by the front door talking with a man. He was evidently
about to go also. There were one or two groups in earnest conversation,
a teacher with two of her class, three women in a corner, and a young
man and a young girl talking. “Ben,” she said, “can you sit down and
talk with me a few minutes?”

The hunger for souls was awakened within the young teacher. Her own
heart’s unrest and sadness made her long to plunge into some other
interest. She put her whole soul into the words she spoke, and the young
man listened intently. There was no doubt but that she had reached his
heart and that he was on the point of yielding to the Holy Spirit. Celia
prayed as she talked and forgot herself, forgot everything but her
desire for this soul’s salvation. She listened to his hesitating, low
words in answer to her earnestly put questions with bated breath. She
could almost hear her own heart beat while she waited for his final
decision, as he sat minute after minute thoughtfully looking down at the
toe of his rough, unblackened shoe and trying to fit it between two
nails in the floor, where the boards were somewhat worn away by the many
feet that tramped over them.

The decision was made at last, and the boy, with a furtive glance around
him, drew his coat sleeve hurriedly across his eyes as he strode out of
the room after having murmured an incoherent good-bye.

Celia stooped to pick up her rubbers which lay under the seat, and then
looked about the deserted room. The sexton was doing something to a
refractory window, which refused to go up and down right. He was used to
busying himself while lingerers kept the church open. Celia thought
everybody else was gone, till, as she neared the door, the minister
arose from one of the back seats and came toward her.

“Would you mind sitting down a few minutes longer?” he said. “I want to
tell you something, and it seems to me that I can tell it better here
than anywhere else.”

Celia felt her heart throbbing and her knees suddenly grew weak, so that
she sat down more because she felt she could not stand without tottering
than because Mr. Stafford had asked her to do so. The day had been an
exciting one for her, and her emotions had been stirred to their depths
by the wonderful talk she had just had with the boy Ben. What could be
coming now? She could not understand, and yet she felt in some way that
it would have to do with the things which had been hurting her so all
day, and would probably hurt her more. She passed her hand across her
forehead wearily, and tried to brace herself to bear whatever might be
said. Perhaps he would ask for sympathy in his sorrow, and how could she
give it? She sent up a swift prayer for help.

Mr. Stafford must have seen the weary expression and the piteous baffled
look in her face, for a troubled one came over his own, as he took his
seat in a chair near her, and asked, anxiously,

“Are you too tired just now? Perhaps I ought to wait. I know you have
been working hard, and your work is telling, too, I could see by that
boy’s face as he went out, that he will be a different fellow from this
time forth. Now, if you would rather go right home, please say so.”

But there was a note in his voice of longing to be heard now, that made
Celia push aside her desire to slip out of it on the plea of weariness
and assert, a little coolly perhaps, that she could hear him now just as
well as to wait.

Her manner made his heart sink, but he began what he had to say with a
frank, “Well, then I’ll try not to keep you long.

“Miss Celia,” it was the first time he had ever called her that, though
several of the other boarders had adopted it from hearing Molly
Poppleton address her in that way, “I do not know whether or not you
know that I have been passing through deep waters during the past week;
I have been by the deathbed and then by the grave of one who was very
dear to me. I felt as though I wanted to tell you about her, not only
because I need the sympathy which I know you can give, but because she
knew all about you and your work, and was deeply interested in you.”

If Mr. Stafford had not been looking down and struggling to control his
voice, so that it would be steady and without the deep emotion he felt,
he would have noticed that Celia’s face grew swiftly white. It was worse
then than she had feared. Not only was she asked to give sympathy, but
this other woman had known all about her. They had talked her over
together. Why this should seem so dreadful to the girl she could not
quite understand, but at the time it seemed more than she could bear. It
was well Mr. Stafford did not pause for a reply, for Celia would have
been incapable of giving any just then.

“She had been ill for a long time,” he went on, his voice breaking a
little, “we knew she could not stay with us much longer, and yet, you
will understand that it was hard to part with her.”

He told in a few words of her beautiful life of sweet patience and
cheerfulness in the face of pain that had endured for years, till Celia
felt ashamed of her selfish jealousy, and longed to shut herself away
from sight that she might cry in quiet. The great tears filled her eyes
and fell unheeded on her hands. She felt herself the meanest and
smallest of mortals, and this other one beautiful and good and bright
enough to be, as she was, with the angels. And yet her heart was very
miserable. She longed to speak a word of sympathy, but knew that she
could not, and blamed herself for it.

“I want to show you her face,” he said, putting his hand in his breast
pocket and bringing out a little velvet case, which Celia knew even
through her blinding tears. He opened and placed it in her hands, the
lovely face with its velvet-blue eyes looking into hers, as he said,
“She was my only sister, you know, and she was _so good_ to me.” Then
the strong man bowed his head on his hand and covered his eyes.

He did not see Celia start, as he said this, but he heard the difference
in her startled exclamation,

“Your sister? Why! I thought!”—and then she stopped, and when he looked
up, as he did at once, her face had changed from white to rosy red.

He looked at her face, lovely behind its tears and blushes, and read the
dawning sympathy, and was glad, even in his sorrow.

“You thought what,—may I know?”

“Why, I—” said Celia, embarrassed and hesitating, blushing deeply,
“I—I did not know you had only one sister!” she finished, desperately.

“But what was it you thought? May I not know?” he asked again, with a
searching look at her face.

“No,” said Celia, dropping her eyes to the picture, and trying to hide
her embarrassment by wiping away the tears with her handkerchief.

“Then may I tell you and you will say whether I am right?” asked the
minister, a daring light coming into his eyes. “You thought that she was
some one even nearer, and dearer than a sister?”

He looked at her long and earnestly and seemed to be satisfied with the
answer of her mute, drooped face.

“Oh, Celia, did you not know that you were the only one who ever had or
would occupy that place in my heart? Have you not seen that I love you?
Don’t you know it? and don’t you care, just a little, Celia?”

The front chapel door stood open, and the afternoon spring sunshine was
flickering fitfully across the floor. They could see the people on the
street passing, loitering and talking, some looking curiously in as they
passed, but none seeming to notice them. Celia felt it all as she sat
dumb in the midst of a whirl of joy and sorrow and shame, and she knew
not what else. She could not answer. She could not look up. The
minister’s eyes were upon her, and she felt what the look in them would
be, and knew she could not bear the joy of seeing it. The silence was
long and could fairly be heard. The sexton who was growing hungry, came
back from the little alcove where the primary class was held and where
he had been straightening the chairs for the evening service and
distributing hymn books. He drew quite near to them now, and slammed
books and put down windows significantly. Celia, feeling that she must
say something, murmured low, still with downcast eyes, “How should I
know it?”

The minister laughed and then grew grave. “That is true,” he said, “I
never could tell you, because you would not let me. But _she_ knew it,
and she was glad of it, and loved you, and left her blessing for you.”
Then he turned suddenly to the sexton, a new tone in his voice. There
was something about Celia that no longer discouraged him.

“Thomas,” he said, “I am going now. Will you kindly see if I left my
Bible in the primary room?”

Thomas went with alacrity to search the primary room.

The minister watched the sexton until he had disappeared, and then he
stooped swiftly and picked up Celia’s gloves which had fallen unheeded
to the floor. As he handed them to her he reverently touched his lips to
one of her little, cold, ungloved hands. She lifted her face for a
moment, and in that moment he got his answer from her eyes.

The sexton was coming back without the Bible, which the minister
suddenly discovered to have been lying on the floor under his chair all
the time, and the two stood decorously apart, Celia trying to keep her
cheeks from growing redder, as she walked to the open door and looked
out into the glad spring sunshine, gladder than any sunshine her eyes
had ever looked upon before.

Some little child, perhaps, had dropped a flower upon the steps, and as
she stood waiting for the minister, she saw it. It was then she
remembered the rose on her lunch tray and its sweet message of hope

          “God’s plans for thee are graciously unfolding,
          And leaf by leaf they blossom perfectly.”

Her heart thrilled over the joy that this had come true, while she
realized that her happiness was yet only in the bud, and she could see
the promise of the day-by-day opening of it for her. Oh, why had she
been doubting? Why could she not trust him perfectly? She lifted her
heart in one swift breath of penitence and thanksgiving. She felt in
that first gush of joy that she would never doubt her Lord again.

Then she turned to walk down the glorified street and gaze on the
familiar surroundings under a halo of joy.




                             CHAPTER XXVI.


It was noon and it was June, and there was to be a wedding in Mrs.
Morris’ boarding-house that was. It was not _the_ wedding, that is the
wedding nearest and dearest to aunt Hannah’s heart; _that_ was to be
later, and in the new chapel, and about it most of the boarders had not
even heard, as yet. Later, when they knew, the bridegroom of the first
wedding said it was a pity they had not fixed things up sooner, so they
could have had a double wedding; that would have been “real nice,” and
Celia and Horace Stafford had looked meaningly at one another, and never
hinted that such an arrangement would have been other than entirely
satisfactory to them, provided “things had been fixed up” in time. They
had their little quiet laugh over it, of course, and kept their secret.

Meantime, the present wedding was a source of deep interest to every
member of the household. Each one contributed something to the general
plans. The parlor, that used to be so dismal was itself in bridal array.
The organ at the further end was literally smothered in palms. The palms
and flowers were Mr. Roger Houston’s contribution. He was not a boarder,
but he had become a frequent visitor at the house, and seemed to be as
much interested as any one in the event. But the arrangement of the
palms was Celia’s, and Celia was to sit behind them and play the wedding
march in the softest, sweetest tones she could coax from the old organ.
They made a lovely background for the bride and groom, and they
completely hid the organ and the player. Under the mantelpiece and above
it, where used to hang the crayoned visage of the deceased Mr. Morris,
were more palms; and the imitation-marble mantelpiece, which Celia
always said looked as mottled as though it were made of slices of
Bologna sausage, was covered with a bank of lovely roses, white and pink
and yellow and crimson. If the wedding had been Celia’s, she would have
preferred to have the roses all white, but the bride in this case was
extravagantly fond of color, and had declared herself in favor of “lots
of roses all colors” so longingly, that Roger Houston said “Let’s please
her for once if she wants _green_ roses, even if the white would be
better taste, Miss Murray. It’s her first wedding, you know, and after
all a rose is a rose.”

But the colors were arranged with Celia’s own skill, and no two colors
dared but harmonize.

Out in the dining-room the long white table was dressed in trailing
vines of smilax, and roses; and the largest and most orthodox wedding
cake that could be procured occupied the place of honor. All about it
were evidences of Molly Poppleton’s art, and everything spoke of
readiness for the ceremony to begin.

Up in her room the bride was being arrayed. The dress was a simple white
muslin plainly made, but she was to wear a veil. It would perhaps have
been more sensible to have worn a traveling dress, as she was to go away
at once, but Mamie (for of course you know the bride was Mamie Williams,
and the groom Bob Yates) had always cried and said she shouldn’t feel
that she was really married if she didn’t wear white, when Miss Grant
counseled economy and good sense. Seeing her heart so set they did not
try to persuade her, but managed to change her purpose of purchasing a
flimsy white silk which would never be of any use to her afterward, and
persuaded her to take instead this simple white lawn. She had demurred,
but finally consented. She was never wholly reconciled to the change,
however, but was somewhat consoled by the fact that it was white and she
was to have a veil.

Celia herself dressed her hair and arranged the soft folds of the veil,
and kissed her, and told aunt Hannah afterward that Mamie Williams was
really lovely in her pretty array. Miss Hannah thought so too as she
came up to give the girl a few last words, as her mother might have
done, perhaps, had she been there. She found Mamie standing by her
bureau with her open Bible before her. Miss Grant did not know that the
white vision of herself in the glass had prompted her to turn to that
first Bible verse of hers and read it over again, “And to her was
granted that she should be arrayed in fine linen, clean and white; for
the fine linen is the righteousness of the saints.” Nor could she know
that the softened, glorified look on her face came from the thought in
her heart that now, perhaps, even she might one day wear that pure
heavenly dress of clean white linen, the garment of Christ’s own
righteousness.

Bob Yates had saved up a nice little sum, and now there was waiting for
them, not many blocks away, a new, neat house of four or five rooms, as
daintily furnished as a bird’s nest. There Mamie was to put in practice
the culinary arts she had learned from Miss Grant and Molly Poppleton,
and to entertain her friends, and some of the young girls with whom she
had grown intimate during her time of selling ribbons with Dobson and
Co., for she had attained to that and taken Celia’s place, and now in
turn was to give it up to a young girl from the minister’s Sunday-school
class.

And they were to take a real wedding trip, too, like all the girls in
the stories Mamie had read, in the days when she used to fancy Mr.
Harold Adams held the key for her of all such delights. They were going
to Atlantic City to a hotel for a whole delightful week, and then they
were going to see Mamie’s mother, and all her little brothers and
sisters, and her gruff, hard-working father. After that Bob Yates would
take his bride to visit his married brother and sister out in
Indiana—the far West, Mamie called it—and then they would come back to
their little house and their new furniture, and their dear church and
their respective Sunday-school classes. It was all very beautiful, and
Mamie felt very happy and all the boarders felt happy for her. She went
back in memory to the time when Mrs. Morris was there, and felt, rather
than thought, how different her life was now, and in fact how different
everything was, and thanked God for the change. She thought of Carrie
Simmons with a pang, and wished that she could have done something for
her. Perhaps, if Miss Grant had come sooner Carrie might have been
saved. Mamie had so far forgotten her old pride that she actually felt a
little glad that Carrie could not look in from all her own sorrow and
misfortune and shame and misery, in which she had heard she dwelt, and
see her own joy and happy surroundings.

Miss Grant had gone down to the kitchen to watch things while Molly
Poppleton got on her best gown for the ceremony, and everything was
progressing toward the last exciting minute, when the doorbell rang. The
second girl who was setting chairs in the dining-room in the best
possible way to economize room, went quietly to the door, her neat blue
and white striped gingham and white waitress-apron and cap making a
decided contrast to the slatternly Maggie who used to answer the door in
Mrs. Morris’ time.

The large oldish-looking woman, and the tall, grizzled man, unmistakably
a farmer, who stood together on the step stared at the girl when the
door was opened, in undisguised amazement.

“Why!” said the woman at last, looking up at the number over the door as
if mistaken in her whereabouts, “isn’t this,—at least—isn’t this a
boarding-house?”

“Yes, it is,” responded the maid, “won’t you walk in? Miss Grant is busy
just now, that is she will be in a minute, but I guess she can see you
first. Did you want to get board?”

She had ushered them into the bedecked parlor, which happened at the
moment to be entirely uninhabited, as the boarders were all in their
rooms donning their gala attire.

But she saw that they had evidently not heard her question, so telling
them to be seated, she went for Miss Grant.

The strangers, however, did not sit down. Instead, they stood staring
around.

“For the land sake!” ejaculated the woman at last, looking around her
more and more bewildered.

“Wal, it’s pretty nice, ’pon honor, M’ria, I wonder now you ever give it
up fer an ole fellow like me,” and he looked at her quizzically.

But the look was lost this time. She was taking in the familiar pattern
of the carpet, which somehow looked strangely bright, and noting all
things new and old about the room.

Then came Miss Grant with her soft grey cashmere, made more lovely by
the cloud of white tulle she wore about her neck, which seemed to blend
so tenderly with the creamy white of her hair.

She stood a moment looking doubtfully at the visitors, seeing something
familiar about the woman’s face, but for an instant not recognizing her.

“Miss Grant, don’t you know me? I’m Mrs. Morris—leastways that used to
be me name. I’m Mrs. Sparks now. I married out there in Ohio, and I’m
real comfortably fixed. He”—nodding her head toward the man—“has a
farm and a nice house, and owns several houses in the town besides. But
I couldn’t rest comfortably noways, a-thinkin’ of you an’ the hole I
left you in, an’ at last me husband found out what was the matter, an’
he just brought me on to see how you was gettin’ along, and to say he’d
help you out of it, if you got badly stuck and pay some of the bills I
left behind me, but when we got here everything looked so kind of
different, somehow I couldn’t think ’twas me own house. You don’t look
as if you was hard up. What’s the meanin’ of it all ennyway, an’ what’s
goin’ on? Are you expectin’ company?”

Miss Grant’s face shone with welcome and her greeting was cordial, even
in the midst of this busy time.

“We’re going to have a wedding in half an hour,” she said, “and you’re
just in time. They will both be delighted to have you here for they are
two of your old boarders. And you can relieve your mind about me, for
I’m not in any hole at all, and coming here was the best thing that ever
happened to me in some ways. I’m grateful to you for giving me a full
fledged boarding-house. I find every month that I am getting on a little
more financially. It isn’t great riches, but it is sure.”

“A wedding! For the land sake!” said Mrs. Morris-Sparks, sententiously.

After Miss Grant had excused herself in haste, to answer a call from
Molly, the guest called after her.

“It must be that nice niece of yours, Miss Murray, but I didn’t never
think she’d take Bob Yates, she used to be so awful stiff with him, but
land alive, you never can tell!”

Miss Grant smiled to herself as she hurried down the hall. She would not
explain now, as the visitor would soon see for herself.

That evening, after all the guests were gone, and the bridal pair had
departed, Miss Grant took Mrs. Morris-Sparks, and slipping out the front
door, let her in by a latchkey to the adjoining house which had for
months been closed, with a “For Rent” sign in the window. This however
had disappeared. She carefully locked the door behind her, and turning
up the gas, pointed out the place where wide double doors had been
roughly drafted on the wall between the two houses. She also enlarged
upon some other improvements, among them a wide bay window to be added
in both first and second stories of the front of the house. Then she
took her upstairs, and showed a suite of rooms beautifully furnished,
and told the story of how the minister had bought this house and
furnished these rooms for himself and Celia, and that the houses were to
be connected, and the remainder of the room used to enlarge the
boarding-house, in which scheme their hearts were deeply interested. She
told her, too, how with careful looking to the little details she had
been enabled not only to make both ends meet, but to have a trifle over,
and how she hoped in the coming year with the enlargements and her
present experience actually to make it a paying business.

And Mrs. Morris-Sparks looked and listened, and shook her head, but all
she could say was, “For the land sake! Who would ’a’ thought it!”




                             CHAPTER XXVII.


Hiram and Nettie Bartlett had been talking a good deal lately about
running down to Philadelphia to see aunt Hannah and Celia. Hiram was
feeling that a little ready money in his business would enable him to
get through a hard time which he saw ahead. Nettie was missing aunt
Hannah dreadfully, as the hot days grew longer. They had decided that it
would be a good thing to forget and forgive, and open their home and as
much of their hearts as was necessary to their relatives. Aunt Hannah
would manage the kitchen, and Celia would manage the children, and Hiram
would manage Celia’s money. Having decided matters thus, and made some
changes in the arrangements of the rooms, to suit the new order of
things, they began to feel very sure that it was to be. Of course aunt
Hannah and Celia were thoroughly tired of living in a boarding-house by
this time, and would welcome the change, and they had but to speak the
word and they would fly back to Cloverdale. But before they came, it
would be a pleasant change to take the children to Philadelphia for a
visit.

No sooner had they decided this than Nettie wrote to aunt Hannah.

The letter reached Philadelphia in the midst of plans for Celia’s
wedding. They read it together, Celia and aunt Hannah, and looked at one
another in dismay. Somehow, in the joy of the life they were living,
they had forgotten to write Nettie anything about Celia’s proposed
marriage. Perhaps it was but natural, as Nettie very seldom answered
aunt Hannah’s long letters, which had been written at regular intervals
at first, until she began to feel that they were not desired. But now
they both felt that Nettie must be invited.

Celia summoned all the cousinly feeling she had ever possessed for
Nettie, and wrote her a nice letter, putting into it a little touch of
her sweet girlish joy over the happiness that had come to her. She
finished with a cordial invitation to them all to come on, though the
addition to the family at this time would be extremely inconvenient.

Celia did fret a little over their coming. Hiram would be disagreeable
and Nettie would want to manage everything, and the children would be
always about when they were not wanted.

She was sitting one evening thinking about it, with brow knit in
troubled thought, when Mr. Stafford came in. He watched her a moment,
and then taking both his hands he placed them over her ruffled brow and
smoothed the wrinkles out. Then he bent and kissed her forehead fondly.

“What is the matter, dearest?” he said. “I mean to make it my business
always to keep that troubled look away from your dear face.”

“Oh, Horace! How can I help it? I have tried and tried, but I do not
seem to be able to conquer the habit. Indeed, I am ashamed of it. Can
you not tell me how I can conquer it?”

“Only by casting all your care upon him, who careth for you. Listen,
Celia, have you ever heard this?

           “‘Wherefore should we do ourselves this wrong,
           Or others, that we are not always strong;
           That we are ever overborne with care,
             That we should ever weak or heartless be,
           Anxious or troubled, when with us is prayer,
             And joy and strength and courage are with thee?’”

Then Celia opened her heart to him and told him the story of her winter,
beginning with her birthday and the little bookmark aunt Hannah had
sent.

“And I thought then, Horace,” she went on, “after that money came to me,
my ‘daily rate’ for ‘all the days of my life,’ that I would never doubt
any more because I had money, and with that I would be able to relieve
most of the other anxieties. But I found it wasn’t so. I began to fret
about other things, and then after I got money, I wanted love, and now I
have that, I find I’m still fretting.”

“It’s because you don’t remember that it’s ‘for every day,’ dear, and
that means for every need of every day. You trust for one set of things,
but you think you have to worry along and look out for another set. Here
is a quaint old poem I came across the other day that I cut out and put
in my pocketbook to read to you some time. It fits in right here, let me
read it,

              “‘I have a never-failing bank,
                My more than golden store;
              No earthly bank is half so rich,
                How, then, can I be poor?

              “‘’Tis when my stock is spent and gone,
                And I not worth a groat;
              I’m glad to hasten to my bank,
                And beg a little note.

              “‘Sometimes my banker smiling says,
                Why don’t you oftener come?
              And when you draw a little note,
                Why not a larger sum?

              “‘Why live so niggardly and poor,
                My bank contains a plenty;
              Why come and take a one-pound note,
                When you can have a twenty?

              “‘Nay, twenty thousand ten times told
                Is but a trifling sum,
              To what my Father has laid up
                For me in God the Son.

              “‘Since, then, my banker is so rich,
                I have no need to borrow,
              But live upon my notes to-day,
                And draw again to-morrow.’”

Nettie Bartlett settled herself for the homeward trip from Philadelphia
with a discontented look. She slapped Johnnie when he went to get a
drink—which he did the first fifteen minutes of the journey—because he
stepped on her toes. She jerked the baby up who was endeavoring to pick
a piece of orange peel out of a pool of tobacco juice on the floor, and
then settled into her discontented silence again. She was thinking about
the fall sewing and house cleaning, and the endless darning and baking
and cleaning, with no aunt Hannah to fall back upon. Occasionally, she
reflected upon the bride’s pretty dress, or had visions of Celia in her
cloud-like veil looking up with happy eyes into her husband’s face, and
a half jealous feeling shot through her heart. She knew how Celia felt,
or thought she did. She had felt so herself, but of course all such
nonsense was passed. She looked gloomily across at Hiram, who was
staring stolidly out of the window, with his inevitable newspaper lying
across his knees. Then she curled her lip and told herself that Celia
would soon have the sentiment taken out of her by the prose of everyday
life.

“You made a great mistake by not cultivating that
minister-cousin-in-law, Nettie,” remarked Hiram, snappily. “I talked to
him every chance I got, but it takes women and compliments and that sort
of thing to work on men, and especially ministers, I guess. You ought to
have invited them to our house for part of their wedding trip. I’m dead
certain he’s rich. Did you see all that furniture he’s fixed out for
Celia? He’ll spoil her the first thing off.”

“You made a great mistake yourself, when you let aunt Hannah, and Celia,
too, go away from our house, and you can’t ever undo it. Yes, I saw the
furniture, but his mother sent it, for Celia said so. We might have had
a few blessings, and our children would have been brought up right, if
aunt Hannah had been with us. She always brings a blessing wherever she
goes, and we’ve had nothing but ill-luck since she left us,” and Nettie
put her handkerchief to her eyes and wept while the train sped rapidly
through the darkness.

                 *        *        *        *        *

Some weeks later, Celia seated in the pleasant study of the suite of
rooms which were her new home, and yet her old home, engaged in the
delightful task of classifying and placing in a cabinet the various
clippings which her minister husband had gathered about him during his
bachelor years, came upon this poem. She paused to read it and smiled
with a little echo of the peace it spoke in her heart, and bent her head
to thank her Father it was true.

              “The child leans on its parent’s breast,
              Leaves there its cares and is at rest;
              The bird sits singing by his nest,
                  And tells aloud
              His trust in God, and so is blest
                  ’Neath every cloud.
              He has no store, he sows no seed;
              Yet sings aloud, and doth not heed;
              By flowing stream or grassy mead,
                  He sings to shame
              Men, who forget, in fear of need,
                  A Father’s name.
              The heart that trusts forever sings,
              And feels as light as it had wings;
              A well of peace within it springs;
                  Come good or ill,
              Whate’er to-day, to-morrow brings,
                  It is his will.”




                           TRANSCRIBER NOTES

Misspelled words and printer errors have been corrected. Where multiple
spellings occur, majority use has been employed.

Punctuation has been maintained except where obvious printer errors
occur.

          [The end of _A Daily Rate_ by Grace Livingston Hill]



*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK "A DAILY RATE." ***


    

Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.


START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG™ LICENSE

PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg
electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

    This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
    other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
    whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
    of the Project Gutenberg™ License included with this eBook or online
    at www.gutenberg.org. If you
    are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
    of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
  
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg electronic works
provided that:

    • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
        the use of Project Gutenberg works calculated using the method
        you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
        to the owner of the Project Gutenberg trademark, but he has
        agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
        within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
        legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
        payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
        Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation.”
    
    • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
        you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
        does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
        License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
        copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
        all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
        works.
    
    • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
        any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
        electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
        receipt of the work.
    
    • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
        distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
    

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg

Project Gutenberg is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 41 Watchung Plaza #516,
Montclair NJ 07042, USA, +1 (862) 621-9288. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.